Home
  By Author [ A  B  C  D  E  F  G  H  I  J  K  L  M  N  O  P  Q  R  S  T  U  V  W  X  Y  Z |  Other Symbols ]
  By Title [ A  B  C  D  E  F  G  H  I  J  K  L  M  N  O  P  Q  R  S  T  U  V  W  X  Y  Z |  Other Symbols ]
  By Language
all Classics books content using ISYS

Download this book: [ ASCII | HTML | PDF ]

Look for this book on Amazon


We have new books nearly every day.
If you would like a news letter once a week or once a month
fill out this form and we will give you a summary of the books for that week or month by email.

Title: Danny's Own Story
Author: Marquis, Don
Language: English
As this book started as an ASCII text book there are no pictures available.


*** Start of this LibraryBlog Digital Book "Danny's Own Story" ***


DANNY’S OWN STORY

By Don Marquis


[Illustration: 0001]

[Illustration: 0010]

[Illustration: 0011]



TO


MY WIFE



CHAPTER I


HOW I come not to have a last name is a question that has always had
more or less aggervation mixed up with it. I might of had one jest
as well as not if Old Hank Walters hadn’t been so all-fired, infernal
bull-headed about things in gineral, and his wife Elmira a blame sight
worse, and both of em ready to row at a minute’s notice and stick to it
forevermore.

Hank, he was considerable of a lusher. One Saturday night, when he come
home from the village in his usual fix, he stumbled over a basket that
was setting on his front steps. Then he got up and drawed back his foot
unsteady to kick it plumb into kingdom come. Jest then he hearn Elmira
opening the door behind him, and he turned his head sudden. But the kick
was already started into the air, and when he turns he can’t stop it.
And so Hank gets twisted and falls down and steps on himself. That
basket lets out a yowl.

“It’s kittens,” says Hank, still setting down and staring at that there
basket. All of which, you understand, I am a-telling you from hearsay,
as the lawyers always asts you in court.

Elmira, she sings out:

“Kittens, nothing! It’s a baby!”

And she opens the basket and looks in and it was me.

“Hennerey Walters,” she says--picking me up, and shaking me at him like
I was a crime, “Hennerey Walters, where did you get this here baby?” She
always calls him Hennerey when she is getting ready to give him fits.

Hank, he scratches his head, for he’s kind o’ confuddled, and thinks
mebby he really has brought this basket with him. He tries to think of
all the places he has been that night. But he can’t think of any place
but Bill Nolan’s saloon. So he says:

“Elmira, honest, I ain’t had but one drink all day.” And then he kind o’
rouses up a little bit, and gets surprised and says:

“That a _baby_ you got there, Elmira?” And then he says, dignified: “So
fur as that’s consarned, Elmira, where did _you_ get that there baby?”

She looks at him, and she sees he don’t really know where I come from.
Old Hank mostly was truthful when lickered up, fur that matter, and she
knowed it, fur he couldn’t think up no lies excepting a gineral denial
when intoxicated up to the gills.

Elmira looks into the basket. They was one of them long rubber tubes
stringing out of a bottle that was in it, and I had been sucking that
bottle when interrupted. And they wasn’t nothing else in that basket but
a big thick shawl which had been wrapped all around me, and Elmira
often wore it to meeting afterward. She goes inside and she looks at
the bottle and me by the light, and Old Hank, he comes stumbling in
afterward and sets down in a chair and waits to get Hail Columbia for
coming home in that shape, so’s he can row back agin, like they done
every Saturday night.

Blowed in the glass of the bottle was the name: “Daniel, Dunne and
Company.” Anybody but them two old ignoramuses could of told right off
that that didn’t have nothing to do with me, but was jest the company
that made them kind of bottles. But she reads it out loud three or four
times, and then she says:

“His name is Daniel Dunne,” she says.

“And Company,” says Hank, feeling right quarrelsome.

“_Company_ hain’t no name,” says she.

“_Why_ hain’t it, I’d like to know?” says Hank. “I knowed a man oncet
whose name was Farmer, and if a farmer’s a name why ain’t a company a
name too?”

“His name is Daniel Dunne,” says Elmira, quietlike, but not dodging a
row, neither.

“_And company_,” says Hank, getting onto his feet, like he always done
when he seen trouble coming. When Old Hank was full of licker he knowed
jest the ways to aggervate her the worst.

She might of banged him one the same as usual, and got her own eye
blacked also, the same as usual; but jest then I lets out another big
yowl, and she give me some milk.

I guess the only reason they ever kep’ me at first was so they could
quarrel about my name. They’d lived together a good many years and
quarrelled about everything else under the sun, and was running out of
subjects. A new subject kind o’ briskened things up fur a while.

But finally they went too far with it one time. I was about two years
old then and he was still calling me Company and her calling me Dunne.
This time he hits her a lick that lays her out and likes to kill her,
and it gets him scared. But she gets around agin after a while, and they
both see it has went too fur that time, and so they makes up.

“Elmira, I give in,” says Hank. “His name is Dunne.”

“No,” says she, tender-like, “you was right, Hank. His name is Company.”
 So they pretty near got into another row over that. But they finally
made it up between em I didn’t have no last name, and they’d jest call
me Danny. Which they both done faithful ever after, as agreed.

Old Hank, he was a blacksmith, and he used to lamm me considerable, him
and his wife not having any kids of their own to lick. He lammed me when
he was drunk, and he whaled me when he was sober. I never helt it up
agin him much, neither, not fur a good many years, because he got me
used to it young, and I hadn’t never knowed nothing else. Hank’s wife,
Elmira, she used to lick him jest about as often as he licked her, and
boss him jest as much. So he fell back on me. A man has jest naturally
got to have something to cuss around and boss, so’s to keep himself
from finding out he don’t amount to nothing. Leastways, most men is like
that. And Hank, he didn’t amount to much; and he kind o’ knowed it, way
down deep in his inmost gizzards, and it were a comfort to him to have
me around.

But they was one thing he never sot no store by, and I got along now to
where I hold that up agin him more’n all the lickings he ever done. That
was book learning. He never had none himself, and he was sot agin it,
and he never made me get none, and if I’d ever asted him for any he’d
of whaled me fur that. Hank’s wife, Elmira, had married beneath her, and
everybody in our town had come to see it, and used to sympathize with
her about it when Hank wasn’t around. She’d tell em, yes, it was so.
Back in Elmira, New York, from which her father and mother come to our
part of Illinoise in the early days, her father had kep’ a hotel,
and they was stylish kind o’ folks. When she was born her mother was
homesick fur all that style and fur York State ways, and so she named
her Elmira.

But when she married Hank, he had considerable land. His father had left
it to him, but it was all swamp land, and so Hank’s father, he hunted
more’n he farmed, and Hank and his brothers done the same when he was a
boy. But Hank, he learnt a little blacksmithing when he was growing up,
cause he liked to tinker around and to show how stout he was. Then,
when he married Elmira Appleton, he had to go to work practising that
perfession reg’lar, because he never learnt nothing about farming. He’d
sell fifteen or twenty acres, every now and then, and they’d be high
times till he’d spent it up, and mebby Elmira would get some new
clothes.

But when I was found on the door step, the land was all gone, and Hank
was practising reg’lar, when not busy cussing out the fellers that had
bought the land. Fur some smart fellers had come along, and bought up
all that swamp land and dreened it, and now it was worth seventy or
eighty dollars an acre. Hank, he figgered some one had cheated him.
Which the Walterses could of dreened theirn too, only they’d ruther
hunt ducks and have fish frys than to dig ditches. All of which I hearn
Elmira talking over with the neighbours more’n once when I was growing
up, and they all says: “How sad it is you have came to this, Elmira!”
 And then she’d kind o’ spunk up and say, thanks to glory, she’d kep’ her
pride.

Well, they was worse places to live in than that there little town, even
if they wasn’t no railroad within eight miles, and only three hundred
soles in the hull copperation. Which Hank’s shop and our house set in
the edge of the woods jest outside the copperation line, so’s the city
marshal didn’t have no authority to arrest him after he crossed it.

They was one thing in that house I always admired when I was a kid. And
that was a big cistern. Most people has their cisterns outside their
house, and they is a tin pipe takes all the rain water off the roof and
scoots it into them. Ourn worked the same, but our cistern was right in
under our kitchen floor, and they was a trap door with leather hinges
opened into it right by the kitchen stove. But that wasn’t why I was
so proud of it. It was because that cistern was jest plumb full of
fish--bullheads and red horse and sunfish and other kinds.

Hank’s father had built that cistern. And one time he brung home some
live fish in a bucket and dumped em in there. And they growed. And they
multiplied in there and refurnished the earth. So that cistern had got
to be a fambly custom, which was kep’ up in that fambly for a habit.
It was a great comfort to Hank, fur all them Walterses was great fish
eaters, though it never went to brains. We fed em now and then, and
throwed back in the little ones till they was growed, and kep’ the dead
ones picked out soon’s we smelled anything wrong, and it never hurt the
water none; and when I was a kid I wouldn’t of took anything fur living
in a house like that.

Oncet, when I was a kid about six years old, Hank come home from the
bar-room. He got to chasing Elmira’s cat cause he says it was making
faces at him. The cistern door was open, and Hank fell in. Elmira was
over to town, and I was scared. She had always told me not to fool
around there none when I was a little kid, fur if I fell in there I’d be
a corpse quicker’n scatt.

So when Hank fell in, and I hearn him splash, being only a little
feller, and awful scared because Elmira had always made it so strong,
I hadn’t no sort of unbelief but what Hank was a corpse already. So I
slams the trap door shut over that there cistern without looking in,
fur I hearn Hank flopping around down in there. I hadn’t never hearn
a corpse flop before, and didn’t know but what it might be somehow
injurious to me, and I wasn’t going to take no chances.

So I went out and played in the front yard, and waited fur Elmira. But
I couldn’t seem to get my mind settled on playing I was a horse, nor
nothing. I kep’ thinking mebby Hank’s corpse is going to come flopping
out of that cistern and whale me some unusual way. I hadn’t never been
licked by a corpse, and didn’t rightly know jest what one is, anyhow,
being young and comparitive innocent. So I sneaks back in and sets
all the flatirons in the house on top of the cistern lid. I hearn some
flopping and splashing and spluttering, like Hank’s corpse is trying to
jump up and is falling back into the water, and I hearn Hank’s voice,
and got scareder yet. And when Elmira come along down the road, she seen
me by the gate a-crying, and she asts me why.

“Hank is a corpse,” says I, blubbering.

“A corpse!” says Elmira, dropping her coffee which she was carrying home
from the gineral store and post-office. “Danny, what do you mean?”

I seen I was to blame somehow, and I wisht then I hadn’t said nothing
about Hank being a corpse. And I made up my mind I wouldn’t say nothing
more. So when she grabs holt of me and asts me agin what did I mean
I blubbered harder, jest the way a kid will, and says nothing else. I
wisht I hadn’t set them flatirons on that door, fur it come to me all at
oncet that even if Hank _has_ turned into a corpse I ain’t got any right
to keep him in that cistern.

Jest then Old Mis’ Rogers, which is one of our neighbours, comes by,
while Elmira is shaking me and yelling out what did I mean and how did
it happen and had I saw it and where was Hank’s corpse?

And Mis’ Rogers she says, “What’s Danny been doing now, Elmira?” me
being always up to something.

Elmira she turned around and seen her, and she gives a whoop and then
hollers out: “Hank is dead!” and throws her apern over her head and sets
right down in the path and boo-hoos like a baby. And I bellers louder.

Mis’ Rogers, she never waited to ast nothing more. She seen she had a
piece of news, and she’s bound to be the first to spread it, like they
is always a lot of women wants to be in them country towns. She run
right acrost the road to where the Alexanderses lived. Mis’ Alexander,
she seen her coming and unhooked the screen door, and Mis’ Rogers she
hollers out before she reached the porch:

“Hank Walters is dead.”

And then she went footing it up the street. They was a black plume on
her bunnet which nodded the same as on a hearse, and she was into and
out of seven front yards in five minutes.

Mis’ Alexander, she runs acrost the street to where we was, and she
kneels down and puts her arm around Elmira, which was still rocking back
and forth in the path, and she says:

“How do you know he’s dead, Elmira? I seen him not more’n an hour ago.”

“Danny seen it all,” says Elmira.

Mis’ Alexander turned to me, and wants to know what happened and how it
happened and where it happened. But I don’t want to say nothing about
that cistern. So I busts out bellering fresher’n ever, and I says:

“He was drunk, and he come home drunk, and he done it then, and that’s
how he cone it,” I says.

“And you seen him?” she says. I nodded.

“Where is he?” says she and Elmira, both to oncet.

But I was scared to say nothing about that there cistern, so I jest
bawled some more.

“Was it in the blacksmith shop?” says Mis’ Alexander. I nodded my head
agin and let it go at that.

“Is he in there now?” asts Mis’ Alexander. I nodded agin. I hadn’t meant
to give out no untrue stories. But a kid will always tell a lie, not
meaning to tell one, if you sort of invite him with questions like that,
and get him scared the way you’re acting. Besides, I says to myself, “so
long as Hank has turned into a corpse and that makes him dead, what’s
the difference whether he’s in the blacksmith shop or not?” Fur I hadn’t
had any plain idea, being such a little kid, that a corpse meant to be
dead, and wasn’t sure what being dead was like, neither, except they had
funerals over you then. I knowed being a corpse must be some sort of
a big disadvantage from the way Elmira always says keep away from that
cistern door or I’ll be one. But if they was going to be a funeral in
our house, I’d feel kind o’ important, too. They didn’t have em every
day in our town, and we hadn’t never had one of our own.

So Mis’ Alexander, she led Elmira into the house, both a-crying, and
Mis’ Alexander trying to comfort her, and me a tagging along behind
holding onto Elmira’s skirts and sniffling into them. And in a few
minutes all them women Mis’ Rogers has told come filing into that room,
one at a time, looking sad. Only Old Mis’ Primrose, she was awful late
getting there because she stopped to put on her bunnet she always wore
to funerals with the black Paris lace on it her cousin Arminty White had
sent her from Chicago.

When they found out Hank had come home with licker in him and done it
himself, they was all excited, and they all crowds around and asts me
how, except two as is holding onto Elmira’s hands which sets moaning in
a chair. And they all asts me questions as to what I seen him do, which
if they hadn’t I wouldn’t have told em the lies I did. But they egged me
on to it.

Says one woman: “Danny, you seen him do it in the blacksmith shop?”

I nodded.

“But how did he get in?” sings out another woman. “The door was locked
on the outside with a padlock jest now when I come by. He couldn’t of
killed himself in there and locked the door on the outside.”

I didn’t see how he could of done that myself, so I begun to bawl agin
and said nothing at all.

“He must of crawled through that little side window,” says another one.
“It was open when I come by, if the door _was_ locked. Did you see him
crawl through the little side window, Danny?”

I nodded. They wasn’t nothing else fur me to do.

“But _you_ hain’t tall enough to look through that there window,” says
another one to me. “How could you see into that shop, Danny?”

I didn’t know, so I didn’t say nothing at all; I jest sniffled.

“They is a store box right in under that window,” says another one.
“Danny must have clumb onto that store box and looked in after he seen
Hank come down the road and crawl through the window. Did you scramble
onto the store box and look in, Danny?”

I jest nodded agin.

“And what was it you seen him do? How did he kill himself?” they all
asts to oncet.

_I_ didn’t know. So I jest bellers and boo-hoos some more. Things was
getting past anything I could see the way out of.

“He might of hung himself to one of the iron rings in the jists above
the forge,” says another woman. “He clumb onto the forge to tie the rope
to one of them rings, and he tied the other end around his neck, and
then he stepped off’n the forge. Was that how he done it, Danny?”

I nodded. And then I bellered louder than ever. I knowed Hank was down
in that there cistern, a corpse and a mighty wet corpse, all this time;
but they kind o’ got me to thinking mebby he was hanging out in the shop
by the forge, too. And I guessed I’d better stick to the shop story, not
wanting to say nothing about that cistern no sooner’n I could help it.

Pretty soon one woman says, kind o’ shivery:

“I don’t want to have the job of opening the door of that blacksmith
shop the first one!”

And they all kind o’ shivered then, and looked at Elmira. They says to
let some of the men open it. And Mis’ Alexander, she says she’ll run
home and tell her husband right off.

And all the time Elmira is moaning in that chair. One woman says Elmira
orter have a cup o’ tea, which she’ll lay off her bunnet and go to the
kitchen and make it fur her. But Elmira says no, she can’t a-bear to
think of tea, with poor Hennerey a-hanging out there in the shop. But
she was kind o’ enjoying all that fuss being made over her, too. And all
the other women says:

“Poor thing!” But all the same they was mad she said she didn’t want any
tea, for they all wanted some and didn’t feel free without she took it
too. Which she said she would after they’d coaxed a while and made her
see her duty.

So they all goes out to the kitchen, bringing along some of the best
room chairs, Elmira coming too, and me tagging along behind. And the
first thing they noticed was them flatirons on top of the cistern door.
Mis’ Primrose, she says that looks funny. But another woman speaks up
and says Danny must of been playing with them while Elmira was over
town. She says, “Was you playing they was horses, Danny?”

I was feeling considerable like a liar by this time, but I says I was
playing horses with them, fur I couldn’t see no use in hurrying things
up. I was bound to get a lamming purty soon anyhow. When I was a kid I
could always bet on that. So they picks up the flatirons, and as they
picks em up they come a splashing noise in the cistern. I thinks to
myself, Hank’s corpse’ll be out of there in a minute. One woman, she
says:

“Goodness gracious sakes alive! What’s that, Elmira?”

Elmira says that cistern is mighty full of fish, and they is some great
big ones in there, and it must be some of them a-flopping around. Which
if they hadn’t of been all worked up and talking all to oncet and all
thinking of Hank’s body hanging out there in the blacksmith shop they
might of suspicioned something. For that flopping kep’ up steady, and a
lot of splashing too. I mebby orter mentioned sooner it had been a dry
summer and they was only three or four feet of water in our cistern, and
Hank wasn’t in scarcely up to his big hairy chest. So when Elmira says
the cistern is full of fish, that woman opens the trap door and looks
in. Hank thinks it’s Elmira come to get him out. He allows he’ll keep
quiet in there and make believe he is drowned and give her a good scare
and make her sorry fur him. But when the cistern door is opened, he
hears a lot of clacking tongues all of a sudden like they was a hen
convention on. He allows she has told some of the neighbours, and he’ll
scare them too. So Hank, he laid low. And the woman as looks in sees
nothing, for it’s as dark down there as the insides of the whale what
swallered Noah. But she leaves the door open and goes on a-making tea,
and they ain’t skeercly a sound from that cistern, only little, ripply
noises like it might have been fish.

Pretty soon a woman says:

“It has drawed, Elmira; won’t you have a cup?” Elmira she kicked some
more, but she took hern. And each woman took hern. And one woman,
a-sipping of hern, she says:

“The departed had his good pints, Elmira.”

Which was the best thing had been said of Hank in that town fur years
and years.

Old Mis’ Primrose, she always prided herself on being honest, no matter
what come, and she ups and says:

“I don’t believe in no hippercritics at a time like this, no more’n no
other time. The departed wasn’t no good, and the hull town knowed it;
and Elmira orter feel like it’s good riddance of bad rubbish and them is
my sentiments and the sentiments of rightfulness.”

All the other women sings out:

“W’y, _Mis’ Primrose_! I never!” And they seemed awful shocked. But down
in underneath more of em agreed than let on. Elmira she wiped her eyes
and she said:

“Hennerey and me has had our troubles. They ain’t any use in denying
that, Mis’ Primrose. It has often been give and take between us and
betwixt us. And the hull town knows he has lifted his hand agin me
more’n oncet. But I always stood up to Hennerey, and I fit him back,
free and fair and open. I give him as good as he sent on this here
earth, and I ain’t the one to carry no annermosities beyond the grave. I
forgive Hank all the orneriness he done me, and they was a lot of it, as
is becoming unto a church member, which he never was.”

And all the women but Mis’ Primrose, they says:

“Elmira Appleton, you _have_ got a Christian sperrit!” Which done her a
heap of good, and she cried considerable harder, leaking out tears as
fast as she poured tea in. Each one on em tries to find out something
good to say about Hank, only they wasn’t much they could say. And Hank
in that there cistern a-listening to every word of it.

Mis’ Rogers, she says:

“Afore he took to drinking like a fish, Hank Walters was as likely
looking a young feller as I ever see.”

Mis’ White, she says:

“Well, Hank he never was a stingy man, nohow. Often and often White has
told me about seeing Hank, after he’d sold a piece of land, treating the
hull town down in Nolan’s bar-room jest as come-easy, go-easy as if it
wasn’t money he orter paid his honest debts with.”

They set there that-a-way telling of what good pints they could think of
fur ten minutes, and Hank a-hearing it and getting madder and madder
all the time. The gineral opinion was that Hank wasn’t no good and
was better done fur, and no matter what they said them feelings kep’
sticking out through the words.

By and by Tom Alexander come busting into the house, and his wife, Mis’
Alexander, was with him.

“What’s the matter with all you folks,” he says. “They ain’t nobody
hanging in that there blacksmith shop. I broke the door down and went
in, and it was empty.”

Then they was a pretty howdy-do, and they all sings out:

“Where’s the corpse?”

And some thinks mebby some one has cut it down and took it away, and all
gabbles to oncet. But for a minute no one thinks mebby little Danny has
been egged on to tell lies. Little Danny ain’t saying a word. But Elmira
she grabs me and shakes me and she says:

“You little liar, you, what do you mean by that tale you told?”

I thinks that lamming is about due now. But whilst all eyes is turned on
me and Elmira, they comes a voice from that cistern. It is Hank’s voice,
and he sings out:

“Tom Alexander, is that you?”

Some of the women scream, for some thinks it is Hank’s ghost. But one
woman says what would a ghost be doing in a cistern?

Tom Alexander, he laughs and he says:

“What in blazes you want to jump in there fur, Hank?”

“You dern ijut!” says Hank, “you quit mocking me and get a ladder, and
when I get out’n here I’ll learn you to ast what did I want to jump in
here fur!”

“You never seen the day you could do it,” says Tom Alexander, meaning
the day he could lick him. “And if you feel that way about it you can
stay there fur all of me. I guess a little water won’t hurt you none.”
 And he left the house.

“Elmira,” sings out Hank, mad and bossy, “you go get me a ladder!”

But Elmira, her temper riz up too, all of a sudden.

“Don’t you dare order me around like I was the dirt under your feet,
Hennerey Walters,” she says.

At that Hank fairly roared, he was so mad. He says:

“Elmira, when I get out’n here I’ll give you what you won’t fergit in a
hurry. I hearn you a-forgiving me and a-weeping over me, and I won’t be
forgive nor weeped over by no one! You go and get that ladder.”

But Elmira only answers:

“You wasn’t sober when you fell into there, Hennerey Walters. And now
you can jest stay in there till you get a better temper on you!” And all
the women says: “That’s right, Elmira; spunk up to him!”

[Illustration: 0039]

They was considerable splashing around in the water fur a couple of
minutes. And then, all of a sudden, a live fish come a-whirling out
of that hole, which he had ketched it with his hands. It was a big
bullhead, and its whiskers around its mouth was stiffened into spikes,
and it lands kerplump into Mis’ Rogers’s lap, a-wiggling, and it kind
o’ horns her on the hands, and she is that surprised she faints. Mis’
Primrose, she gets up and pushes that fish back into the cistern with
her foot from the floor where it had fell, and she says right decided:

“Elmira Walters, that was Elmira Appleton, if you let Hank out’n that
cistern before he has signed the pledge and promised to jine the church
you’re a bigger fool ‘n I take you to be. A woman has got to make a
stand!” With that she marches out’n our house.

Then all the women sings out:

“Send fur Brother Cartwright! Send fur Brother Cartwright!”

And they sent me scooting acrost town to get him quick. Which he was the
preacher of the Baptist church and lived next to it. And I hadn’t got no
lamming yet!



CHAPTER II


I never stopped to tell but two, three folks on the way to Brother
Cartwright’s, but they must of spread it quick. ‘Cause when I got back
home with him it seemed like the hull town was there. It was along about
dusk by this time, and it was a prayer-meeting night at the church.
Mr. Cartwright told his wife to tell the folks what come to the
prayer-meeting he’d be back before long, and to wait fur him. Which she
really told them where he had went, and what fur. Mr. Cartwright
marches right into the kitchen. All the chairs in our house was into the
kitchen, and the women was a-talking and a-laughing, and they had sent
over to Alexanderses for their chairs and to Rogerses for theirn. Every
oncet in a while they would be a awful bust of language come up from
that hole where that unreginerate old sinner was cooped up in.

I have travelled around considerable since them days, and I have mixed
up along of many kinds of people in many different places, and some
of ‘em was cussers to admire. But I never hearn such cussing before or
since as old Hank done that night. He busted his own records and riz
higher’n his own water marks for previous times. I wasn’t nothing but
a little kid then, and skeercly fitten fur to admire the full beauty of
it. They was deep down cusses, that come from the heart. Looking back
at it after all these years, I can believe what Brother Cartwright said
himself that night, that it wasn’t natcheral cussing and some higher
power, like a demon or a evil sperrit, must of entered into Hank’s human
carkis and give that turrible eloquence to his remarks. It busted out
every few minutes, and the women would put their fingers into their ears
till a spell was over. And it was personal, too. Hank, he would listen
until he hearn a woman’s voice that he knowed, and then he would let
loose on her fambly, going backwards to her grandfathers and downwards
to her children’s children. If her father had once stolen a hog, or her
husband done any disgrace that got found out on him, Hank would put it
all into his gineral remarks, with trimmings onto it.

Brother Cartwright, he steps up to the hole in the floor when he first
comes in and he says, gentle-like and soothing, like a undertaker when he
tells you where to set at a home funeral:

“Brother Walters.”

“Brother!” Hank yells out, “don’t ye brother me, you sniffling,
psalm-singing, yaller-faced, pigeon-toed hippercrit, you! Get me a
ladder, gol dern you, and I’ll come out’n here and learn you to brother
me, I will.” Only that wasn’t nothing to what Hank really said to that
preacher; no more like it than a little yaller, fluffy canary is like a
buzzard.

“Brother Walters,” says the preacher, ca’am but firm, “we have all
decided that you ain’t going to come out of that cistern till you sign
the pledge.”

And Hank tells him what he thinks of pledges and him and church doings,
and it wasn’t purty. And he says if he was as deep in eternal fire as
what he now is in rain-water, and every fish that nibbles at his toes
was a preacher with a red-hot pitchfork a-jabbing at him, they could jab
till the hull hereafter turned into snow afore he’d ever sign nothing a
man like Mr. Cartwright give him to sign. Hank was stubborner than any
mule he ever nailed shoes onto, and proud of being that stubborn. That
town was a awful religious town, and Hank he knowed he was called the
most onreligious man in it, and he was proud of that too; and if any one
called him a heathen it jest plumb tickled him all over.

“Brother Walters,” says that preacher, “we are going to pray for you.”

And they done it. They brought all them chairs close up around that
cistern, in a ring, and they all kneeled down there, with their heads
on ‘em, and they prayed fur Hank’s salvation. They done it up in style,
too, one at a time, and the others singing out, “Amen!” every now and
then, and they shed tears down onto Hank. The front yard was crowded
with men, all a-laughing and a-talking and chawing and spitting tobacco
and betting how long Hank would hold out. Old Si Emery, that was the
city marshal, and always wore a big nickel-plated star, was out there
with ‘em. Si was in a sweat, ‘cause Bill Nolan, that run the bar-room,
and some more of Hank’s friends, or as near friends as he had, was out
in the road. They says to Si he must arrest that preacher, fur Hank is
being gradual murdered in that there water, and he’ll die if he’s helt
there too long, and it will be a crime. Only they didn’t come into the
yard to say it amongst us religious folks. But Si, he says he dassent
arrest no one because it is outside the town copperation; but he’s
considerable worried too about what his duty orter be.

Pretty soon the gang that Mrs. Cartwright has rounded up at the
prayer-meeting comes stringing along in. They had all brung their hymn
books with them, and they sung. The hull town was there then, and they
all sung, and they sung revival hymns over Hank. And Hank he would jest
cuss and cuss. Every time he busted out into another cussing spell they
would start another hymn. Finally the men out in the front yard got
warmed up too, and begun to sing, all but Bill Nolan’s crowd, and they
give Hank up for lost and went away disgusted.

The first thing you knowed they was a reg’lar revival meeting there, and
that preacher was preaching a reg’lar revival sermon. I been to more’n
one camp meeting, but fur jest natcherally taking holt of the hull human
race by the slack of its pants and dangling of it over hell-fire, I
never hearn nothing could come up to that there sermon. Two or three old
backsliders in the crowd come right up and repented all over agin on the
spot. The hull kit and biling of ‘em got the power good and hard, like
they does at camp meetings and revivals. But Hank, he only cussed. He
was obstinate, Hank was, and his pride and dander had riz up. Finally he
says:

“You’re taking a ornery, low-down advantage o’ me, you are. Let me out’n
this here cistern and I’ll show you who’ll stick it out longest on dry
land, dern your religious hides!”

Some of the folks there hadn’t had no suppers, so after all the other
sinners but Hank had either got converted or else sneaked away, some of
the women says why not make a kind of love feast out of it, and bring
some vittles, like they does to church sociables. Because it seems
likely Satan is going to wrastle all night long, like he done with the
angel Jacob, and they ought to be prepared. So they done it. They went
and they come back with vittles and they made up hot coffee and they
feasted that preacher and theirselves and Elmira and me, all right in
Hank’s hearing.

And Hank was getting hungry himself. And he was cold in that water. And
the fish was nibbling at him. And he was getting cussed out and weak and
soaked full of despair. And they wasn’t no way fur him to set down and
rest. And he was scared of getting a cramp in his legs, and sinking down
with his head under water and being drownded. He said afterward he’d of
done the last with pleasure if they was any way of suing that crowd fur
murder. So along about ten o’clock he sings out:

“I give in, gosh dern ye! I give in. Let me out and I’ll sign your pesky
pledge!”

Brother Cartwright was fur getting a ladder and letting him climb out
right away. But Elmira, she says:

“Don’t you do it, Brother Cartwright; don’t you do it. You don’t know
Hank Walters like I does. If he oncet gets out o’ there before he’s
signed that pledge, he won’t never sign it.”

So they fixed it up that Brother Cartwright was to write out a pledge
on the inside leaf of the Bible, and tie the Bible onto a string, and a
lead pencil onto another string, and let the strings down to Hank,
and he was to make his mark, fur he couldn’t write, and they was to be
pulled up agin. Hank, he says all right, and they done it. But jest as
Hank was making his mark on the leaf of the book, that preacher done
what I has always thought was a mean trick. He was lying on the floor
with his head and shoulders into that hole as fur as he could, holding
a lantern way down into it, so as Hank could see. And jest as Hank made
that mark he spoke some words over him, and then he says:

“Now, Henry Walters, I have baptized you, and you are a member of the
church.”

You’d a thought Hank would of broke out cussing agin at being took
unexpected that-a-way, fur he hadn’t really agreed to nothing but
signing the pledge. But nary a cuss. He jest says: “Now, you get that
ladder.”

They got it, and he clumb up into the kitchen, dripping and shivering.

“You went and baptized me in that water?” he asts the preacher. The
preacher says he has.

“Then,” says Hank, “you done a low-down trick on me. You knowed I has
made my brags I never jined no church nor never would jine. You knowed
I was proud of that. You knowed that it was my glory to tell of it, and
that I set a heap of store by it in every way. And now you’ve went and
took it away from me! You never fought it out fair and square, neither,
man playing to outlast man, like you done with this here pledge, but you
sneaked it in on me when I wasn’t looking.”

They was a lot of men in that crowd that thought the preacher had went
too far, and sympathized with Hank. The way he done about that hurt
Brother Cartwright in our town, and they was a split in the church,
because some said it wasn’t reg’lar and wasn’t binding. He lost his
job after a while and become an evangelist. Which it don’t make no
difference what one of them does, nohow.

But Hank, he always thought he had been baptized reg’lar. And he never
was the same afterward. He had made his life-long brags, and his pride
was broke in that there one pertic’ler spot. And he sorrered and grieved
over it a good ‘eal, and got grouchier and grouchier and meaner and
meaner, and lickered oftener, if anything. Signing the pledge couldn’t
hold Hank. He was worse in every way after that night in the cistern,
and took to lamming me harder and harder.



CHAPTER III


Well, all the lammings Hank laid on never done me any good. It seemed
like I was jest natcherally cut out to have no success in life, and no
amount of whaling could change it, though Hank, he was faithful. Before
I was twelve years old the hull town had seen it, and they wasn’t
nothing else expected of me except not to be any good.

That had its handy sides to it, too. They was lots of kids there that
had to go to school, but Hank, he never would of let me done that if I
had ast him, and I never asted. And they was lots of kids considerably
bothered all the time with their parents and relations. They made ‘em go
to Sunday School, and wash up reg’lar all over on Saturday nights, and
put on shoes and stockings part of the time, even in the summer, and
some of ‘em had to ast to go in swimming, and the hull thing was
a continuous trouble and privation to ‘em. But they wasn’t nothing
perdicted of me, and I done like it was perdicted. Everybody ‘lowed
from the start that Hank would of made trash out’n me, even if I hadn’t
showed all the signs of being trash anyhow. And if they was devilment
anywhere about that town they all says, “Danny, he done it.” And like as
not I has. So I gets to be what you might call an outcast. All the kids
whose folks ain’t trash, their mothers tells ‘em not to run with me no
more. Which they done it all the more fur that reason, on the sly, and
it makes me more important with them.

But when I gets a little bigger, all that makes me feel kind o’ bad
sometimes. It ain’t so handy then. Fur folks gets to saying, when I
would come around:

“Danny, what do _you_ want?”

And if I says, “Nothing,” they would say:

“Well, then, you get out o’ here!”

Which they needn’t of been suspicioning nothing like they pertended they
did, fur I never stole nothing more’n worter millions and mush millions
and such truck, and mebby now and then a chicken us kids use to roast in
the woods on Sundays, and jest as like as not it was one of Hank’s hens
then, which I figgered I’d earnt it.

Fur Hank, he had streaks when he’d work me considerable hard. He never
give me any money fur it. He loafed a lot too, and when he’d loaf I’d
loaf. But I did pick up right smart of handiness with tools around that
there shop of his’n, and if he’d ever of used me right I might of turned
into a purty fair blacksmith. But it wasn’t no use trying to work fur
Hank. When I was about fifteen, times is right bad around the house fur
a spell, and Elmira is working purty hard, and I thinks to myself:

“Well, these folks has kind o’ brung you up, and you ain’t never done
more’n Hank made you do. Mebby you orter stick to work a little more
when they’s a job in the shop, even if Hank don’t.”

Which I tried it fur about two or three years, doing as much work around
the shop as Hank done and mebby more. But it wasn’t no use. One day
when I’m about eighteen, I seen awful plain I’ll have to light out from
there. They was a circus come to town that day. I says to Hank:

“Hank, they is a circus this afternoon and agin to-night.”

“So I has hearn,” says Hank.

“Are you going to it?” says I.

“I mout,” says Hank, “and then agin I moutn’t. I don’t see as it’s no
consarns of yourn, nohow.” I knowed he was going, though. Hank, he never
missed a circus.

“Well,” I says, “they wasn’t no harm to ast, was they?”

“Well, you’ve asted, ain’t you?” says Hank.

“Well, then,” says I, “I’d like to go to that there circus myself.”

“They ain’t no use in me saying fur you not to go,” says Hank, “fur you
would go anyhow. You always does go off when you is needed.”

“But I ain’t got no money,” I says, “and I was going to ast you could
you spare me half a dollar?”

“Great Jehosephat!” says Hank, “but ain’t you getting stuck up! What’s
the matter of you crawling in under the tent like you always done? First
thing I know you’ll be wanting a pair of these here yaller shoes and a
stove-pipe hat.”

“No,” says I, “I ain’t no dude, Hank, and you know it. But they is
always things about a circus to spend money on besides jest the circus
herself. They is the side show, fur instance, and they is the grand
concert afterward. I calkelated I’d take ‘em all in this year--the hull
dern thing, jest fur oncet.”

Hank, he looks at me like I’d asted fur a house ‘n’ lot, or a million
dollars, or something like that. But he don’t say nothing. He jest
snorts.

“Hank,” I says, “I been doing right smart work around the shop fur two,
three years now. If you wasn’t loafing so much you’d a noticed it more.
And I ain’t never ast fur a cent of pay fur it, nor--”

“You ain’t wuth no pay,” says Hank. “You ain’t wuth nothing but to eat
vittles and wear out clothes.”

“Well,” I says, “I figger I earn my vittles and a good ‘eal more. And as
fur as clothes goes, I never had none but what Elmira made out’n yourn.”

“Who brung you up?” asts Hank.

“You done it,” says I, “and by your own say-so you done a dern poor job
at it.”

“You go to that there circus,” says Hank, a-flaring up, “and I’ll
lambaste you up to a inch of your life. So fur as handing out money fur
you to sling it to the dogs, I ain’t no bank, and if I was I ain’t no
ijut. But you jest let me hear of you even going nigh that circus lot
and all the lammings you has ever got, rolled into one, won’t be
a measly little sarcumstance to what you _will_ get. They ain’t no
leather-faced young upstart with weepin’-willow hail going to throw up
to me how I brung him up. That’s gratitood fur you, that is!” says Hank.
“If it hadn’t of been fur me giving you a home when I found you first,
where would you of been now?”

“Well,” I says, “I might of been a good ‘eal better off. If you hadn’t
of took me in the Alexanderses would of, and then I wouldn’t of been
kep’ out of school and growed up a ignoramus like you is.”

“I never had no trouble keeping you away from school, I notice,” says
Hank, with a snort. “This is the first I ever hearn of you wanting to go
there.”

Which was true in one way, and a lie in another. I hadn’t never wanted
to go till lately, but he’d of lammed me if I had of wanted to. He
always said he would. And now I was too big and knowed it.

Well, Hank, he never give me no money, so I watches my chancet that
afternoon and slips in under the tent the same as always. And I lays low
under them green benches and wiggled through when I seen a good chancet.
The first person I seen was Hank. Of course he seen me, and he shook
his fist at me in a promising kind of way, and they wasn’t no trouble
figgering out what he meant. Fur a while I didn’t enjoy that circus to
no extent. Fur I was thinking that if Hank tries to lick me fur it I’ll
fight him back this time, which I hadn’t never fit him back much yet fur
fear he’d pick up something iron around the shop and jest natcherally
lay me cold with it.

I got home before Hank did. It was nigh sundown, and I was waiting in
the door of the shop fur Elmira to holler vittles is ready, and Hank
come along. He didn’t waste no time. He steps inside the shop and he
takes down a strap and he says:

“You come here and take off your shirt.”

But I jest moves away. Hank, he runs in on me, and he swings his strap.
I throwed up my arm, and it cut me acrost the knuckles. I run in on him,
and he dropped the strap and fetched me an openhanded smack plumb on the
mouth that jarred my head back and like to of busted it loose. Then I
got right mad, and I run in on him agin, and this time I got to him, and
wrastled with him.

Well, sir, I never was so surprised in all my life before. Fur I hadn’t
had holt on him more’n a minute before I seen I’m stronger than Hank
is. I throwed him, and he hit the ground with considerable of a jar, and
then I put my knee in the pit of his stomach and churned it a couple.
And I thinks to myself what a fool I must of been fur better’n a year,
because I might of done this any time. I got him by the ears and I
slammed his head into the gravel a few times, him a-reaching fur my
throat, and a-pounding me with his fists, but me a-taking the licks and
keeping holt. And I had a mighty contented time fur a few minutes there
on top of Hank, chuckling to myself, and batting him one every now and
then fur luck, and trying to make him holler it’s enough. But Hank is
stubborn and he won’t holler. And purty soon I thinks, what am I going
to do? Fur Hank will be so mad when I let him up he’ll jest natcherally
kill me, without I kill him. And I was scared, because I don’t want
neither one of them things to happen. Whilst I was thinking it over,
and getting scareder and scareder, and banging Hank’s head harder and
harder, some one grabs me from behind.

They was two of them, and one gets my collar and one gets the seat of
my pants, and they drug me off’n him. Hank, he gets up, and then he sets
down sudden on a horse block and wipes his face on his sleeve, which
they was considerable blood come onto the sleeve.

I looks around to see who has had holt of me, and it is two men. One
of them looks about seven feet tall, on account of a big plug hat and a
long white linen duster, and has a beautiful red beard. In the road
they is a big stout road wagon, with a canopy top over it, pulled by two
hosses, and on the wagon box they is a strip of canvas. Which I couldn’t
read then what was wrote on the canvas, but I learnt later it said, in
big print:

SIWASH INDIAN SAGRAW. NATURE’S UNIVERSAL MEDICINAL SPECIFIC. DISCOVERED
BY DR. HARTLEY L. KIRBY AMONG THE ABORIGINES OF OREGON.


On account of being so busy, neither Hank nor me had hearn the wagon
come along the road and stop. The big man in the plug hat, he says, or
they was words to that effect, jest as serious:

“Why are you mauling the aged gent?”

“Well,” says I, “he needed it considerable.”

“But,” says he, still more solemn, “the good book says to honour thy
father and thy mother.”

“Well,” I says, “mebby it does and mebby it don’t. But _he_ ain’t my
father, nohow. And he ain’t been getting no more’n his come-uppings.”

“Vengeance is mine, saith the Lord,” the big man remarks, very serious.
Hank, he riz up then, and he says:

“Mister, be you a preacher? ‘Cause if you be, the sooner you have druv
on, the better fur ye. I got a grudge agin all preachers.”

That feller, he jest looks Hank over ca’am and easy and slow before he
answers, and he wrinkles up his face like he never seen anything like
Hank before. Then he fetches a kind o’ aggervating smile, and he says:


“Beneath a shady chestnut tree  The village blacksmith stands.
The smith, a pleasant soul is he  With warts upon his hands--”



He stares at Hank hard and solemn and serious while he is saying that
poetry at him. Hank fidgets and turns his eyes away. But the feller
touches him on the breast with his finger, and makes him look at him.

“My honest friend,” says the feller, “I am _not_ a preacher. Not right
now, anyhow. No! My mission is spreading the glad tidings of good
health. Look at me,” and he swells his chest up, and keeps a-holt
of Hank’s eyes with his’n. “You behold before you the discoverer,
manufacturer, and proprietor of Siwash Indian Sagraw, nature’s own
remedy for Bright’s Disease, rheumatism, liver and kidney trouble,
catarrh, consumption, bronchitis, ring-worm, erysipelas, lung fever,
typhoid, croup, dandruff, stomach trouble, dyspepsia--” And they was a
lot more of ‘em.

“Well,” says Hank, sort o’ backing up as the big man come nearer and
nearer to him, jest natcherally bully-ragging him with them eyes, “I got
none of them there complaints.”

The doctor he kind o’ snarls, and he brings his hand down hard on Hank’s
shoulder, and he says:

“There are more things betwixt Dan and Beersheba than was ever dreamt
of in thy sagacity, Romeo!” Or they was words to that effect, fur that
doctor was jest plumb full of Scripter quotations. And he sings out
sudden, giving Hank a shove that nearly pushes him over: “Man alive!” he
yells, “you _don’t know_ what disease you may have! Many’s the strong man
I’ve seen rejoicing in his strength at the dawn of day cut down like the
grass in the field before sunset,” he says.

Hank, he’s trying to look the other way, but that doctor won’t let his
eyes wiggle away from his’n. He says very sharp:

“Stick out your tongue!”

[Illustration: 0061]

Hank, he sticks her out.

The doctor, he takes some glasses out’n his pocket and puts ‘em on, and
he fetches a long look at her. Then he opens his mouth like he was going
to say something, and shuts it agin like his feelings won’t let him. He
puts his arm across Hank’s shoulder affectionate and sad, and then he
turns his head away like they was some one dead in the fambly. Finally,
he says:

“I thought so. I saw it. I saw it in your eyes when I first drove up. I
hope,” he says, very mournful, “I haven’t come too late!”

Hank, he turns pale. I was getting sorry fur Hank myself. I seen now why
I licked him so easy. Any one could of told from that doctor’s actions
Hank was as good as a dead man already. But Hank, he makes a big effort,
and he says:

“Shucks! I’m sixty-eight years old, doctor, and I hain’t never had a
sick day in my life.” But he was awful uneasy too.

The doctor, he says to the feller with him: “Looey, bring me one of the
sample size.”

Looey brung it, the doctor never taking his eyes off’n Hank. He handed
it to Hank, and he says:

“A whiskey glass full three times a day, my friend, and there is a good
chance for even you. I give it to you, without money and without price.”

“But what have I got?” asts Hank.

“You have spinal meningitis,” says the doctor, never batting an eye.

“Will this here cure me?” says Hank.

“It’ll cure _anything_,” says the doctor.

Hank he says, “Shucks,” agin, but he took the bottle and pulled the cork
out and smelt it, right thoughtful. And what them fellers had stopped
at our place fur was to have the shoe of the nigh hoss’s off hind foot
nailed on, which it was most ready to drop off. Hank, he done it fur a
regulation, dollar-size bottle and they druv on into the village.

Right after supper I goes down town. They was in front of Smith’s Palace
Hotel. They was jest starting up when I got there. Well, sir, that
doctor was a sight. He didn’t have his duster onto him, but his
stove-pipe hat was, and one of them long Prince Alferd coats nearly to
his knees, and shiny shoes, but his vest was cut out holler fur to show
his biled shirt, and it was the pinkest shirt I ever see, and in the
middle of that they was a diamond as big as Uncle Pat Hickey’s wen,
what was one of the town sights. No, sir; they never was a man with more
genuine fashionableness sticking out all over him than Doctor Kirby. He
jest fairly wallered in it.

I hadn’t paid no pertic’ler attention to the other feller with him when
they stopped at our place, excepting to notice he was kind of slim
and blackhaired and funny complected. But I seen now I orter of looked
closeter. Fur I’ll be dad-binged if he weren’t an Injun! There he set,
under that there gasoline lamp the wagon was all lit up with, with
moccasins on, and beads and shells all over him, and the gaudiest turkey
tail of feathers rainbowing down from his head you ever see, and a
blanket around him that was gaudier than the feathers. And he shined and
rattled every time he moved.

That wagon was a hull opry house to itself. It was rolled out in front
of Smith’s Palace Hotel without the hosses. The front part was filled
with bottles of medicine. The doctor, he begun business by taking out a
long brass horn and tooting on it. They was about a dozen come, but they
was mostly boys. Then him and the Injun picked up some banjoes and sung
a comic song out loud and clear. And they was another dozen or so
come. And they sung another song, and Pop Wilkins, he closed up the
post-office and come over and the other two veterans of the Grand Army
of the Republicans that always plays checkers in there nights come along
with him. But it wasn’t much of a crowd, and the doctor he looked sort
o’ worried. I had a good place, right near the hind wheel of the wagon
where he rested his foot occasional, and I seen what he was thinking. So
I says to him:

“Doctor Kirby, I guess the crowd is all gone to the circus agin
to-night.” And all them fellers there seen I knowed him.

“I guess so, Rube,” he says to me. And they all laughed ‘cause he called
me Rube, and I felt kind of took down.

Then he lit in to tell about that Injun medicine. First off he told how
he come to find out about it. It was the father of the Injun what
was with him had showed him, he said. And it was in the days of his
youthfulness, when he was wild, and a cowboy on the plains of Oregon.
Well, one night he says, they was an awful fight on the plains of
Oregon, wherever them is, and he got plugged full of bullet holes. And
his hoss run away with him and he was carried off, and the hoss was
going at a dead run, and the blood was running down onto the ground. And
the wolves smelt the blood and took out after him, yipping and yowling
something frightful to hear, and the hoss he kicked out behind and
killed the head wolf and the others stopped to eat him up, and while
they was eating him the hoss gained a quarter of a mile. But they et him
up and they was gaining agin, fur the smell of human blood was on the
plains of Oregon, he says, and the sight of his mother’s face when she
ast him never to be a cowboy come to him in the moonlight, and he knowed
that somehow all would yet be well, and then he must of fainted and he
knowed no more till he woke up in a tent on the plains of Oregon. And
they was an old Injun bending over him and a beautiful Injun maiden was
feeling of his pulse, and they says to him:

“Pale face, take hope, fur we will doctor you with Siwash Injun Sagraw,
which is nature’s own cure fur all diseases.”

They done it. And he got well. It had been a secret among them there
Injuns fur thousands and thousands of years. Any Injun that give away
the secret was killed and rubbed off the rolls of the tribe and buried
in disgrace upon the plains of Oregon. And the doctor was made a blood
brother of the chief, and learnt the secret of that medicine. Finally
he got the chief to see as it wasn’t Christian to hold back that
there medicine from the world no longer, and the chief, his heart was
softened, and he says to go.

“Go, my brother,” he says, “and give to the pale faces the medicine
that has been kept secret fur thousands and thousands of years among the
Siwash Injuns on the plains of Oregon.”

And he went. It wasn’t that he wanted to make no money out of that there
medicine. He could of made all the money he wanted being a doctor in the
reg’lar way. But what he wanted was to spread the glad tidings of good
health all over this fair land of ourn, he says.

Well, sir, he was a talker, that there doctor was, and he knowed more
religious sayings and poetry along with it, than any feller I ever
hearn. He goes on and he tells how awful sick people can manage to get
and never know it, and no one else never suspicion it, and live along
fur years and years that-a-way, and all the time in danger of death. He
says it makes him weep when he sees them poor diluted fools going around
and thinking they is well men, talking and laughing and marrying and
giving in to marriage right on the edge of the grave. He sees dozens of
‘em in every town he comes to. But they can’t fool him, he says. He can
tell at a glance who’s got Bright’s Disease in their kidneys and who
ain’t. His own father, he says, was deathly sick fur years and years and
never knowed it, and the knowledge come on him sudden like, and he died.
That was before Siwash Injun Sagraw was ever found out about. Doctor
Kirby broke down and cried right there in the wagon when he thought of
how his father might of been saved if he was only alive now that that
medicine was put up into bottle form, six fur a five-dollar bill so long
as he was in town, and after that two dollars fur each bottle at the
drug store.

He unrolled a big chart and the Injun helt it by that there gasoline
lamp, so all could see, turning the pages now and then. It was a map of
a man’s inside organs and digestive ornaments and things. They was red
and blue, like each organ’s own disease had turned it, and some of ‘em
was yaller. And they was a long string of diseases printed in black
hanging down from each organ’s picture. I never knowed before they was
so many diseases nor yet so many things to have ‘em in.

Well, I was feeling purty good when that show started. But the doc,
he kep’ looking right at me every now and then when he talked, and I
couldn’t keep my eyes off’n him.

“Does your heart beat fast when you exercise?” he asts the crowd. “Is
your tongue coated after meals? Do your eyes leak when your nose is
stopped up? Do you perspire under your arm pits? Do you ever have a
ringing in your ears? Does your stomach hurt you after meals? Does your
back ever ache? Do you ever have pains in your legs? Do your eyes blur
when you look at the sun? Are your teeth coated? Does your hair come out
when you comb it? Is your breath short when you walk up stairs? Do your
feet swell in warm weather? Are there white spots on your finger nails?
Do you draw your breath part of the time through one nostril and part
of the time through the other? Do you ever have nightmare? Did your
nose bleed easily when you were growing up? Does your skin fester when
scratched? Are your eyes gummy in the mornings? Then,” he says, “if you
have any or all of these symptoms, your blood is bad, and your liver is
wasting away.”

Well, sir, I seen I was in a bad way, fur at one time or another I had
had most of them there signs and warnings, and hadn’t heeded ‘em, and I
had some of ‘em yet. I begun to feel kind o’ sick, and looking at them
organs and diseases didn’t help me none, either. The doctor, he lit out
on another string of symptoms, and I had them, too. Seems to me I had
purty nigh everything but fits. Kidney complaint and consumption both
had a holt on me. It was about a even bet which would get me first. I
kind o’ got to wondering which. I figgered from what he said that I’d
had consumption the _longest_ while, but my kind of kidney trouble was an
awful SLY kind, and it was lible to jump in without no warning a-tall
and jest natcherally wipe me out _quick_. So I sort o’ bet on the
kidney trouble. But I seen I was a goner, and I forgive Hank all his
orneriness, fur a feller don’t want to die holding grudges.

Taking it the hull way through, that was about the best medicine show I
ever seen. But they didn’t sell much. All the people what had any money
was to the circus agin that night. So they sung some more songs and
closed early and went into the hotel.



CHAPTER IV


Well, the next morning I’m feeling considerable better, and think mebby
I’m going to live after all. I got up earlier’n Hank did, and slipped
out without him seeing me, and didn’t go nigh the shop a-tall. Fur now
I’ve licked Hank oncet I figger he won’t rest till he has wiped that
disgrace out, and he won’t care a dern what he picks up to do it with,
nuther.

They was a crick about a hundred yards from our house, in the woods,
and I went over there and laid down and watched it run by. I laid awful
still, thinking I wisht I was away from that town. Purty soon a squirrel
comes down and sets on a log and watches me. I throwed an acorn at him,
and he scooted up a tree quicker’n scatt. And then I wisht I hadn’t
scared him away, fur it looked like he knowed I was in trouble. Purty
soon I takes a swim, and comes out and lays there some more, spitting
into the water and thinking what shall I do now, and watching birds and
things moving around, and ants working harder’n ever I would agin unless
I got better pray fur it, and these here tumble bugs kicking their loads
along hind end to.

After a while it is getting along toward noon, and I’m feeling hungry.
But I don’t want to have no more trouble with Hank, and I jest lays
there. I hearn two men coming through the underbrush. I riz up on my
elbow to look, and one of them was Doctor Kirby and the other was Looey,
only Looey wasn’t an Injun this morning.

They sets down on the roots of a big tree a little ways off, with their
backs toward me, and they ain’t seen me. So nacherally I listened to
what they was jawing about. They was both kind o’ mad at the hull world,
and at our town in pertic’ler, and some at each other, too. The doctor,
he says:

“I haven’t had such rotten luck since I played the bloodhound in a Tom
Show--Were you ever an ‘Uncle Tom’s Cabin’ artist, Looey?--and a justice
of the peace over in Iowa fined me five dollars for being on the street
without a muzzle. Said it was a city ordinance. Talk about the gentle
Rube being an easy mark! If these country towns don’t get the wandering
minstrel’s money one way they will another!”

“It’s your own fault,” says Looey, kind o’ sour.

“I can’t see it,” says Doctor Kirby. “How did I know that all these
apple-knockers had been filled up with Sykes’s Magic Remedy only two
weeks ago? I may have been a spiritualistic medium in my time now and
then,” he says, “and a mind reader, too, but I’m no prophet.”

“I ain’t talking about the business, Doc, and you know it,” says Looey.
“We’d be all right and have our horses and wagon now if you’d only stuck
to business and not got us into that poker game. Talk about suckers!
Doc, for a man that has skinned as many of ‘em as you have, you’re the
worst sucker yourself I ever saw.”

The doctor, he cusses the poker game and country towns and medicine
shows and the hull creation and says he is so disgusted with life he
guesses he’ll go and be a preacher or a bearded lady in a sideshow. But
Looey, he don’t cheer up none. He says:

“All right, Doc, but it’s no use talking. You can _talk_ all right. We all
know that. The question is how are we going to get our horses and wagon
away from these Rubes?”

I listens some more, and I seen them fellers was really into bad
trouble. Doctor Kirby, he had got into a poker game at Smith’s Palace
Hotel the night before, right after the show. He had won from Jake
Smith, which run it, and from the others. But shucks! it never made no
difference what you won in that crowd. They had done Doctor Kirby and
Looey like they always done a drummer or a stranger that come along to
that town and was fool enough to play poker with them. They wasn’t a
chancet fur an outsider. If the drummer lost, they would take his money
and that would be all they was to it. But if the drummer got to winning
good, some one would slip out’n the hotel and tell Si Emery, which was
the city marshal. And Si would get Ralph Scott, that worked fur Jake
Smith in his livery stable, and pin a star onto Ralph, too. And they
would be arrested fur gambling, only them that lived in our town would
get away. Which Si and Ralph was always scared every time they done it.
Then the drummer, or whoever it was, would be took to the calaboose, and
spend all night there.

[Illustration: 0077]

In the morning they would be took before Squire Matthews, that was
justice of the peace. They would be fined a big fine, and he would get
all the drummer had won and all he had brung to town with him besides.
Squire Matthews and Jake Smith and Windy Goodell and Mart Watson, which
the two last was lawyers, was always playing that there game on drummers
that was fool enough to play poker. Hank, he says he bet they divided it
up afterward, though it was supposed them fines went to the town. Well,
they played a purty closte game of poker in our little town. It was jest
like the doctor says to Looey:

“By George,” he says, “it is a well-nigh perfect thing. If you lose you
lose, and if you win you lose.”

Well, the doctor, he had started out winning the night before. And Si
Emery and Ralph Scott had arrested them. And that morning, while I had
been laying by the crick and the rest of the town was seeing the fun,
they had been took afore Squire Matthews and fined one hundred and
twenty-five dollars apiece. The doctor, he tells Squire Matthews it
is an outrage, and it ain’t legal if tried in a bigger court, and they
ain’t that much money in the world so fur as he knows, and he won’t pay
it. But, the squire, he says the time has come to teach them travelling
fakirs as is always running around the country with shows and electric
belts and things that they got to stop dreening that town of hard-earned
money, and he has decided to make an example of ‘em. The only two
lawyers in town is Windy and Mart, which has been in the poker game
theirselves, the same as always. The doctor says the hull thing is a
put-up job, and he can’t get the money, and he wouldn’t if he could, and
he’ll lay in that town calaboose and rot the rest of his life and eat
the town poor before he’ll stand it. And the squire says he’ll jest take
their hosses and wagon fur c’latteral till they make up the rest of the
two hundred and fifty dollars. And the hosses and wagon was now in the
livery stable next to Smith’s Palace Hotel, which Jake run that too.

Well, I thinks to myself, it _is_ a dern shame, and I felt sorry fur them
two fellers. Fur our town was jest as good as stealing that property.
And I felt kind o’ shamed of belonging to such a town, too. And I thinks
to myself, I’d like to help ‘em out of that scrape. And then I seen
how I could do it, and not get took up fur it, neither. So, without
thinking, all of a sudden I jumps up and says:

“Say, Doctor Kirby, I got a scheme!”

They jumps up too, and they looks at me startled. Then the doctor kind
o’ laughs and says:

“Why, it’s the young blacksmith!”

Looey, he says, looking at me hard and suspicious:

“What kind of a scheme are you talking about?”

“Why,” says I, “to get that outfit of yourn.”

“You’ve been listening to us,” says Looey. Looey was one of them
quiet-looking fellers that never laughed much nor talked much. Looey,
he never made fun of nobody, which the doctor was always doing, and I
wouldn’t of cared to make fun of Looey much, either.

“Yes,” I says, “I been laying here fur quite a spell, and quite
natcheral I listened to you, as any one else would of done. And mebby I
can get that team and wagon of yourn without it costing you a cent.”

Well, they didn’t know what to say. They asts me how, but I says to
leave it all to me. “Walk right along down this here crick,” I says,
“till you get to where it comes out’n the woods and runs acrost the road
in under an iron bridge. That’s about a half a mile east. Jest after the
road crosses the bridge it forks. Take the right fork and walk another
half a mile and you’ll see a little yaller-painted schoolhouse setting
lonesome on a sand hill. They ain’t no school in it now. You wait there
fur me,” I says, “fur a couple of hours. After that if I ain’t there
you’ll know I can’t make it. But I think I’ll make it.”

They looks at each other and they looks at me, and then they go off a
little piece and talk low, and then the doctor says to me:

“Rube,” he says, “I don’t know how you can work anything on us that
hasn’t been worked already. We’ve got nothing more we can lose. You go
to it, Rube.” And they started off.

So I went over town. Jake Smith was setting on the piazza in front of
his hotel, chawing and spitting tobacco, with his feet agin the railing
like he always done, and one of his eyes squinched up and his hat over
the other one.

“Jake,” I says, “where’s that there doctor?”

Jake, he spit careful afore he answered, and he pulled his long,
scraggly moustache careful, and he squinched his eyes at me. Jake was a
careful man in everything he done.

“I dunno, Danny,” he says. “Why?”

“Well,” I says, “Hank sent me over to get that wagon and them hosses of
theirn and finish that job.”

“That there wagon,” says Jake, “is in my barn, with Si Emery watching
her, and she has got to stay there till the law lets her loose.” I
figgered to myself Jake could use that team and wagon in his business,
and was going to buy her cheap offn the town, what share of her he
didn’t figger he owned already.

“Why, Jake,” I says, “I hope they ain’t been no trouble of no kind that
has drug the law into your barn!”

“Well, Danny,” he says, “they _has_ been a little trouble. But it’s about
over, now, I guess. And that there outfit belongs to the town now.”

“You don’t say so!” says I, surprised-like. “When I seen them men last
night it looked to me like they was too fine dressed to be honest.”

“I don’t think they be, Danny,” says Jake, confidential. “In my opinion
they is mighty bad customers. But they has got on the wrong side of the
law now, and I guess they won’t stay around here much longer.”

“Well,” says I, “Hank will be glad.”

“Fur what?” asts Jake.

“Well,” says I, “because he got his pay in advance fur that job and now
he don’t have to finish it. They come along to our place about sundown
yesterday, and we nailed a shoe on one hoss. They was a couple of
other hoofs needed fixing, and the tire on one of the hind wheels was
beginning to rattle loose.”

I had noticed that loose tire when I was standing by the hind wheel the
night before, and it come in handy now. So I goes on:

“Hank, he allowed he’d fix the hull thing fur six bottles of that Injun
medicine. Elmira has been ailing lately, and he wanted it fur her. So
they handed Hank out six bottles then and there.”

“Huh!” says Jake. “So the job is all paid fur, is it?”

“Yes,” says I, “and I was expecting to do it myself. But now I guess
I’ll go fishing instead. They ain’t no other job in the shop.”

“I’ll be dinged if you’ve got time to fish,” says Jake. “I’m expecting
mebby to buy that rig off the town myself when the law lets loose of it.
So if the fixing is paid fur, I want everything fixed.”

“Jake,” says I, kind of worried like, “I don’t want to do it without
that doctor says to go ahead.”

“They ain’t his’n no longer,” says Jake.

“I dunno,” says I, “as you got any right to make me do it, Jake. It
don’t look to me like it’s no harm to beat a couple of fellers like them
out of their medicine. And I _did_ want to go fishing this afternoon.”

But Jake was that careful and stingy he’d try to skin a hoss twicet if
it died. He’s bound to get that job done, now.

“Danny,” he says, “you gotto do that work. It ain’t _honest_ not to. What
a young feller like you jest starting out into life wants to remember is
to always be honest. Then,” says Jake, squinching up his eyes, “people
trusts you and you get a good chancet to make money. Look at this here
hotel and livery stable, Danny. Twenty years ago I didn’t have no more’n
you’ve got, Danny. But I always went by them mottoes--hard work and
being honest. You _gotto_ nail them shoes on, Danny, and fix that wheel.”

“Well, all right, Jake,” says I, “if you feel that way about it. Jest
give me a chaw of tobacco and come around and help me hitch ‘em up.”

Si Emery was there asleep on a pile of straw guarding that property. But
Ralph Scott wasn’t around. Si didn’t wake up till we had hitched ‘em up.
He says he will ride around to the shop with me. But Jake says:

“It’s all right, Si. I’ll go over myself and fetch ‘em back purty soon.”
 Which Si was wore out with being up so late the night before, and goes
back to sleep agin right off.

Well, sir, they wasn’t nothing went wrong. I drove slow through the
village and past our shop. Hank come to the door of it as I went past.
But I hit them hosses a lick, and they broke into a right smart trot.
Elmira, she come onto the porch and I waved my hand at her. She put her
hand up to her forehead to shut out the sun and jest stared. She didn’t
know I was waving her farewell. Hank, he yelled something at me, but I
never hearn what. I licked them hosses into a gallop and went around the
turn of the road. And that’s the last I ever seen or hearn of Hank or
Elmira or that there little town.



CHAPTER V


I slowed down when I got to the schoolhouse, and both them fellers piled
in.

“I guess I better turn north fur about a mile and then turn west, Doctor
Kirby,” I says, “so as to make a kind of a circle around that town.”

“Why, so, Rube?” he asts me.

“Well,” I says, “we left it going east, and they’ll foller us east; so
don’t we want to be going west while they’re follering east?”

Looey, he agreed with me. But he said it wouldn’t be much use, fur we
would likely be ketched up with and took back and hung or something,
anyhow. Looey could get the lowest in his sperrits sometimes of any man
I ever seen.

“Don’t be afraid of that,” says the doctor. “They are not going to
follow us. _They_ know they didn’t get this property by due process of
law. _They_ aren’t going to take the case into a county court where it
will all come out about the way they robbed a couple of travelling men
with a fake trial.”

“I guess you know more about the law’n I do,” I says. “I kind o’ thought
mebby we stole them hosses.”

“Well,” he says, “we got ‘em, anyhow. And if they try to arrest us
without a warrant there’ll be the deuce to pay. But they aren’t going
to make any more trouble. I know these country crooks. They’ve got no
stomach for trouble outside their own township.”

Which made me feel considerable better, fur I never been of the opinion
that going agin the law done any one no good.

They looks around in that wagon, and all their stuff was there--Jake
Smith and the squire having kep’ it all together careful to make things
seem more legal, I suppose--and the doctor was plumb tickled, and Looey
felt as cheerful as he ever felt about anything. So the doctor says they
has everything they needs but some ready money, and he’ll get that sure,
fur he never seen the time he couldn’t.

“But, Looey,” he says, “I’m done with country hotels from now on.
They’ve got the last cent they ever will from me--at least in the summer
time.”

“How you going to work it?” Looey asts him, like he hasn’t no hopes it
will work right.

“Camp out,” says the doctor. “I’ve been thinking it all over.” Then he
turns to me. “Rube,” he says, “where are you going?”

“Well,” I says, “I ain’t pinted nowhere in pertic’ler except away from
that town we just left. Which my name ain’t Rube, Doctor Kirby, but
Danny.”

“Danny what?” asts he.

“Nothing,” says I, “jest Danny.”

“Well, then, Danny,” says he, “how would you like to be an Indian?”

“Medical?” asts I, “or real?”

“Like Looey,” says he.

I tells him being a medical Injun and mixed up with a show like his’n
would suit me down to the ground, and asts him what is the main duties
of one besides the blankets and the feathers.

“Well,” he says, “this camping-out scheme of mine will take a couple of
Indians. Instead of paying hotel and feed bills we’ll pitch our tent,”
 he says, “at the edge of town in each sweet Auburn of the plains. We’ll
save money and we’ll be near the throbbing heart of nature. And an
Indian camp in each place will be a good advertisement for the Sagraw.
You can look after the horses and learn to do the cooking and that kind
o’ thing. And maybe after while,” he says, kind o’ working himself up to
where he thought it was going to be real nice, “maybe after while I will
give you some insight into the hidden mysteries of selling Siwash Indian
Sagraw.”

“Well,” says I, “I’d like to learn that.”

“Would you?” says he, kind o’ laughing at himself and me too, and yet
kind o’ enthusiastic, “well, then, the first thing you have to do is
learn how to sell corn salve. Any one that can sell corn salve can sell
anything. There’s a farmhouse right over there, and I’ll give you your
first lesson right now. Rummage around in that satchel there under the
seat and get me a tin box and some corn salve labels.”

I found a lot of labels, and some boxes too. The labels was all
different sizes, but barring that they all looked about the same to me.
Whilst I was sizing them up he asts me agin was they any corn salve ones
in there.

“What colour label is it, Doctor Kirby?” I asts him. Fur they was blue
labels and white labels and pink labels.

He looks at me right queer. “Can’t you read the labels?” he says, right
sharp.

“Well,” I says, “I never been much of a reader when it comes to
different kind of medicines.”

“Corn salve is spelled only one way,” says he.

“That’s right,” I says, “and you’d think I orter be able to pick out a
common, ordinary thing like corn salve right off, wouldn’t you?”

“Danny,” he says, “you don’t mean to tell me you can’t read anything at
all?”

“I never told you nothing of the kind.”

He picks out a label.

“If you can read so fast, what’s that?” he asts.

She is a pink one. I thinks to myself; she either is corn salve or else
she ain’t corn salve. And it ain’t natcheral he will pick corn salve,
fur he would think I would say that first off. So I’m betting it ain’t.
I takes a chancet on it.

“That,” says I, “is mighty easy reading. That is Siwash Injun Sagraw.” I
lost.

“It’s corn salve,” he says. “And Great Scott! They call this the
twentieth century!”

“I never called it that,” says I, sort o’ mad-like. Fur I was feeling
bad Doctor Kirby had found out I was such a ignoramus.

“Where ignorance is bliss,” says he, “it is folly to be wise. But all
the same, I’m going to take your education in hand and make you drink of
life’s Peruvian springs.” Or some spring like that it was.

And the doctor, he done it. Looey said it wouldn’t be no use learning to
read. He’d done a lot of reading, he said, and it never helped him none.
All he ever read showed him this feller Hamlet was right, he said, when
he wrote Shakespeare’s works, and they wasn’t much use in anything,
without you had a lot o’ money. And they wasn’t no chancet to get that
with all these here trusts around gobbling up everything and stomping
the poor man into the dirt, and they was lots of times he wisht he was
a Injun sure enough, and not jest a medical one, fur then he’d be a
free man and the bosses and the trusts and the railroads and the robber
tariff couldn’t touch him. And then he shut up, and didn’t say nothing
fur a hull hour, except oncet he laughed.

Fur Doctor Kirby, he says, winking at me: “Looey, here, is a nihilist.”

“Is he,” says I, “what’s that?” And the doctor tells me about how they
blow up dukes and czars and them foreign high-mucky-mucks with dynamite.
Which is when Looey laughed.

[Illustration: 0091]

Well, we jogged along at a pretty good gait fur several hours, and we
stayed that night at a Swede’s place, which the doctor paid him fur
everything in medicine, only it took a long time to make the bargain,
fur them Swedes is always careful not to get cheated, and hasn’t many
diseases. And the next night we showed in a little town, and done right
well, and took in considerable money. We stayed there three days and
bought a tent and a sheet-iron stove and some skillets and things and
some provisions, and a suit of duds for me.

Well, we went on, and we kept going on, and they was bully times. We’d
ease up careful toward a town, and pick us out a place on the edge,
where the hosses could graze along the side of the road; and most
ginerally by a piece of woods not fur from that town, and nigh a crick,
if we could. Then we’d set up our tent. After we had everything fixed,
I’d put on my Injun clothes and Looey his’n, and we’d drive through the
main store street of the town at a purty good lick, me a-holt of the
reins, and the doctor all togged out in his best clothes, and Looey
doing a Injun dance in the midst of the wagon. I’d pull up the hosses
sudden in front of the post-office or the depot platform or the hotel,
and the people would come crowding around, and the doctor he’d make a
little talk from the wagon, and tell everybody they would be a free show
that night on that corner, and fur everybody to come to it. And then
we’d drive back to camp, lickitysplit.

Purty soon every boy in town would be out there, kind o’ hanging around,
to see what a Injun camp was like. And the farmers that went into and
out of town always stopped and passed the time of day, and the Injun
camp got the hull town all worked up as a usual thing; and the doctor,
he done well, fur when night come every one would be on hand. Looey
and me, every time we went into town, had on our Injun suits, and the
doctor, he wondered why he hadn’t never thought up that scheme before.
Sometimes, when they was lots of people ailing in a town, and they
hadn’t been no show fur quite a while, we’d stay five or six days, and
make a good clean-up. The doctor, he sent to Chicago several times fur
alcohol in barrels, ‘cause he was selling it so fast he had to make new
Sagraw. And he had to get more and more bottles, and a hull satchel full
of new Sagraw labels printed.

And all the time the doctor was learning me education. And shucks! they
wasn’t nothing so hard about it oncet you’d got started in to reading
things. I jest natcherally took to print like a duck to water, and
inside of a month I was reading nigh everything that has ever been
wrote. He had lots of books with him and every time a new sockdologer of
a word come along and I learnt how to spell her and where she orter fit
in to make sense it kind o’ tickled me all over. And many’s the time
afterward, when me and the doctor had lost track of each other, and they
was quite a spell people got to thinking I was a tramp, I’ve went into
these here Andrew Carnegie libraries in different towns jest as much to
see if they had anything fitten to read as fur to keep warm.

Well, we went easing over toward the Indiany line, and we was having a
purty good time. They wasn’t no work to do you could call really hard,
and they was plenty of vittles. Afternoons we’d lazy around the camp and
swap stories and make medicine if we needed a batch, and josh back and
forth with the people that hung around, and loaf and doze and smoke; or
mebby do a little fishing if we was nigh a crick.

And nights after the show was over it was fun, too. We always had a
fire, even if it was a hot night, fur to cook by in the first place, and
fur to keep mosquitoes off, and to make things seem more cheerful.
They ain’t nothing so good as hanging round a campfire. And they ain’t
nothing any better than sleeping outdoors, neither. You roll up in your
blanket with your feet to the fire and you get to wondering things about
things afore you go to sleep. The silentness jest natcherally swamps
everything after a while, and then all them queer little noises
you never hear in the daytime comes popping and poking through the
silentness, or kind o’ scratching their way through it sometimes, and
makes it kind o’ feel more silent than ever. And if you are nigh a
crick, purty soon it will sort of get to talking to you, only you can’t
make out what it’s trying to say, and you get to wondering about that,
too. And if you are in a tent and it rains and the tent don’t leak, that
rain is a kind of a nice thing to listen to itself. But if you can see
the stars you get to wondering more’n ever. They come out and they is
so many of them and they are so fur away, and yet they are so kind o’
friendly-like, too, if you happen to be feeling purty good. But if you
ain’t feeling purty good, jest lay there and look at them stars long
enough; and then mebby you’ll see it don’t make no difference whether
you’re feeling good or not, fur they got a way o’ making your private
troubles look mighty small. And you get to wondering why that is, too,
fur they ain’t human; and it don’t stand to reason you orter pay no
attention to them, one way nor the other. They is jest there, like trees
and cricks and hills. But I have often noticed that the things that is
jest there has got a way of seeming more friendly than the things that
has been built and put there. You can look at a big iron bridge or a
grain elevator or a canal all day long, and if you’re feeling blue it
don’t help you none. It was jest put there. Or a hay stack is the same
way. But you go and lazy around in the grass when you’re down on your
luck and kind o’ make remarks to a crick or a big, old walnut tree, and
before long it gets you to feeling like it didn’t make no difference
how you felt, anyhow; fur you don’t amount to nothing by the side of
something that was always there. You get to thinking how the hull world
itself was always here, and you sort o’ see they ain’t nothing important
enough about yourself to worry about, and presently you will go to
sleep and forget it. The doctor says to me one time them stars ain’t
any different from this world, and this is one of them. Which is a fool
idea, as any one can see. He had a lot of queer ideas like that, Doctor
Kirby had. But they ain’t nothing like sleeping out of doors nights to
make you wonder the kind of wonderings you never will get any answer to.

Well, I never cared so much fur houses after them days. They was bully
times, them was. And I was kind of proud of being with a show, too.
Many’s the time I have went down the street in that there Injun suit,
and seen how the young fellers would of give all they owned to be me.
And every now and then you would hear one say when you went past:

“Huh, I know him! That’s one of them show fellers!”

One afternoon we pitches our tent right on the edge of a little town
called Athens. We was nigh the bank of a crick, and they was a grove
there. We was camped jest outside of a wood-lot fence, and back in
through the trees from us they was a house with a hedge fence all around
it. They was apple trees and all kind of flower bushes and things inside
of the hedge. The second day we was there I takes a walk back through
the wood-lot, and along past the house, and they was one of these here
early harvest apple trees spilling apples through a gap in the fence.
Them is a mighty sweet and juicy kind of apple, and I picks one up and
bites into it.

“I think you might have asked for it,” says some one.



CHAPTER VI


I looks up, and that was how I got acquainted with Martha. She was
eating one herself, setting up in the tree like a boy. In her lap was a
book she had been reading. She was leaning back into the fork two limbs
made so as not to tumble.

“Well,” I says, “can I have one?”

“You’ve eaten it already,” she says, “so there isn’t any use begging for
it now.”

I seen she was a tease, that girl, and I would of give anything to of
been able to tease her right back agin. But I couldn’t think of nothing
to say, so I jest stands there kind o’ dumb like, thinking what a dern
purty girl she was, and thinking how dumb I must look, and I felt my
face getting red. Doctor Kirby would of thought of something to say
right off. And after I got back to camp I would think of something
myself. But I couldn’t think of nothing bright, so I says:

“Well, then, you give me another one!”

She gives the core of the one she has been eating a toss at me. But I
ketched it, and made like I was going to throw it back at her real hard.
She slung up her arm, and dodged back, and she dropped her book.

I thinks to myself I’ll learn that girl to get sassy and make me feel
like a dumb-head, even if she is purty. So I don’t say a word. I jest
picks up that book and sticks it under my arm and walks away slow with
it to where they was a stump a little ways off, not fur from the crick,
and sets down with my back to her and opens it. And I was trying all the
time to think of something smart to say to her. But I couldn’t of done
it if I was to be shot. Still, I thinks to myself, no girl can sass me
and not get sassed back, neither.

I hearn a scramble behind me which I knowed was her getting out of that
tree. And in a minute she was in front of me, mad.

“Give me my book,” she says.

But I only reads the name of the book out loud, fur to aggervate her. I
had on purty good duds, but I kind of wisht I had on my Injun rig then.
You take the girls that always comes down to see the passenger train
come into the depot in them country towns and that Injun rig of mine and
Looey’s always made ‘em turn around and look at us agin. I never wisht
I had on them Injun duds so hard before in my life. But I couldn’t think
of nothing bright to say, so I jest reads the name of that book over to
myself agin, kind o’ grinning like I got a good joke I ain’t going to
tell any one.

“You give me my book,” she says agin, red as one of them harvest apples,
“or I’ll tell Miss Hampton you stole it and she’ll have you and your
show arrested.”

I reads the name agin. It was “The Lost Heir.” I seen I had her good and
teased now, so I says: “It must be one of these here love stories by the
way you take on over it.”

“It’s not,” she says, getting ready to cry. “And what right have you got
in our wood-lot, anyhow?”

“Well,” I says, “I was jest about to move on and climb out of it when
you hollered to me from that tree.”

“I didn’t!” she says. But she was mad because she knowed she _had_ spoke
to me first, and she was awful sorry she had.

“I thought I hearn you holler,” I says, “but I guess it must of been a
squirrel.” I said it kind o’ sarcastic like, fur I was still mad with
myself fur being so dumb when we first seen each other. I hadn’t no idea
it would hurt her feelings as hard as it did. But all of a sudden she
begins to wink, and her chin trembled, and she turned around short, and
started to walk off slow. She was mad with herself fur being ketched in
a lie, and she was wondering what I would think of her fur being so bold
as to of spoke first to a feller she didn’t know.

I got up and follered her a little piece. And it come to me all to oncet
I had teased her too hard, and I was down on myself fur it.

“Say,” I says, kind of tagging along beside of her, “here’s your old
book.”

But she didn’t make no move to take it, and her hands was over her face,
and she wouldn’t pull ‘em down to even look at it.

So I tried agin.

“Well,” I says, feeling real mean, “I wisht you wouldn’t cry. I didn’t
go to make you do that.”

She drops her hands and whirls around on me, mad as a wet hen right off.

“I’m not! I’m not!” she sings out, and stamps her feet. “I’m not
crying!” But jest then she loses her holt on herself and busts out and
jest natcherally bellers. “I hate you!” she says, like she could of
killed me.

That made me kind of dumb agin. Fur it come to me all to oncet I liked
that girl awful well. And here I’d up and made her hate me. I held the
book out to her agin and says:

“Well, I’m mighty sorry fur that, fur I don’t feel that-a-way about you
a-tall. Here’s your book.”

Well, sir, she snatches that book and she gives it a sling. I thought it
was going kersplash into the crick. But it didn’t. It hit right into the
fork of a limb that hung down over the crick, and it all spread out when
it lit, and stuck in that crotch somehow. She couldn’t of slung it that
way on purpose in a million years. We both stands and looks at it a
minute.

“Oh, oh!” she says, “what have I done? It’s out of the town library and
I’ll have to pay for it.”

“I’ll get it fur you,” I says. But it wasn’t no easy job. If I shook
that limb it would tumble into the crick. But I clumb the tree and eased
out on that limb as fur as I dast to. And, of course, jest as I got holt
of the book, that limb broke and I fell into the crick. But I had the
book. It was some soaked, but I reckoned it could still be read.

I clumb out and she was jest splitting herself laughing at me. The
wet on her face where she had cried wasn’t dried up yet, and she was
laughing right through it, kind o’ like the sun does to one of these
here May rainstorms sometimes, and she was the purtiest girl I ever
seen. Gosh!--how I was getting to like that girl! And she told me I
looked like a drowned rat.

Well, that was how Martha and me was interduced. She wasn’t more’n
sixteen, and when she found out I was a orphan she was glad, fur she was
one herself. Which Miss Hampton that lived in that house had took her to
raise. And when I tells her how I been travelling around the country all
summer she claps her hands and she says:

“Oh, you are on a quest! How romantic!”

I asts her what is a quest. And she tells me. She knowed all about them,
fur Martha was considerable of a reader. Some of them was longer and
some of them was shorter, them quests, but mostly, Martha says, they was
fur a twelvemonth and a day. And then you are released from your vow
and one of these here queens gives you a whack over the shoulder with a
sword and says: “Arise, Sir Marmeluke, I dub you a night.” And then it
is legal fur you to go out and rescue people and reform them and spear
them if they don’t see things your way, and come between husband and
wife when they row, and do a heap of good in the world. Well, they was
other kind of quests too, but mostly you married somebody, or was dubbed
a night, or found the party you was looking fur, in the end. And Martha
had it all fixed up in her own mind I was in a quest to find my father.
Fur, says she, he is purty certain to be a powerful rich man and more’n
likely a earl.

[Illustration: 0105]

The way I was found, Martha says, kind o’ pints to the idea they was a
earl mixed up in it somewhere. She had read a lot about earls, and knew
their ways. Mebby my mother was a earl’s daughter. Earl’s daughters is
the worst fur leaving you out in baskets, going by what Martha said. It
is a kind of a habit with them, fur they is awful proud people. But it
was a lucky way to start life, from all she said, that basket way. There
was Moses was left out that way, and when he growed up he was made a
kind of a president of the hull human race, the same as Ruzevelt, and
figgered out the twelve commandments. Martha would of give anything if
she could of only been found in a basket like me, I could see that. But
she wasn’t. She had jest been left a orphan when her folks died. They
wasn’t even no hopes she had been changed at birth fur another one. But
I seen down in under everything Martha kind o’ thought mebby one of them
nights might come a-prancing along and wed her in spite of herself, or
she would be carried off, or something. She was a very romanceful kind
of girl.

When I seen she had it figgered out I was in a quest fur some
high-mucky-muck fur a dad, I didn’t tell her no different. I didn’t take
much stock in them earls and nights myself. So fur as I could see they
was all furriners of one kind or another. But that thing of being into a
quest kind of interested me, too.

“How would I know him if I was to run acrost him?” I asts her.

“You would feel an Intangible Something,” she says, “drawing you toward
him.”

I asts her what kind of a something. I make out from what she says it is
some like these fellers that can find water with a piece of witch hazel
switch. You take a switch of it between your thumbs and point it up.
Then you shut your eyes and walk backwards. When you get over where the
water is the witch hazel stick twists around and points to the ground.
You dig there and you get a good well. Nobody knows jest why that
stick is drawed to the ground. It is like one of these little whirlygig
compasses is drawed to the north. It is the same, Martha says, if you is
on a quest fur a father or a mother, only you have got to be worthy of
that there quest, she says. The first time you meet the right one you
are drawed jest like the witch hazel. That is the Intangible Something
working on you, she says. Martha had learnt a lot about that. The book
that had fell in the crick was like that. She lent it to me.

Well, that all sounded kind of reasonable to me. I seen that witch hazel
work myself. Old Blindy Wolfe, whose eyes had been dead fur so many
years they had turned plumb white, had that gift, and picked out all the
places fur wells that was dug in our neighbourhood at home. And I makes
up my mind I will watch out fur that feeling of being drawed wherever I
goes after this. You can’t tell what will come of them kind of things.
So purty soon Martha has to milk the cow, and I goes along back to camp
thinking about that quest and about what a purty girl she is, which we
had set there talking so long it was nigh sundown and my clothes had
dried onto me.

When I got over to camp I seen they must be something wrong. Looey was
setting in the grass under the wagon looking kind of sour and kind of
worried and watching the doctor. The doctor was jest inside the tent,
and he was looking queer too, and not cheerful, which he was usually.

The doctor looks at me like he don’t skeercly know me. Which he don’t.
He has one of them quiet kind of drunks on. Which Looey explains is
bound to come every so often. He don’t do nothing mean, but jest gets
low-sperrited and won’t talk to no one. Then all of a sudden he will go
down town and walk up and down the main streets, orderly, but looking
hard into people’s faces, mostly women’s faces. Oncet, Looey says, they
was big trouble over it. They was in a store in a good-sized town, and
he took hold of a woman’s chin, and tilted her face back, and looked at
her hard, and most scared her to death, and they was nearly being a riot
there. And he was jailed and had to pay a big fine. Since then Looey
always follers him around when he is that-a-way.

Well, that night Doctor Kirby is too fur gone fur us to have our show.
He jest sets and stares and stares at the fire, and his eyes looks like
they is another fire inside of his head, and he is hurting outside and
in. Looey and me watches him from the shadders fur a long time before
we turns in, and the last thing I seen before I went to sleep was him
setting there with his face in his hands, staring, and his lips moving
now and then like he was talking to himself.

The next day he is asleep all morning. But that day he don’t drink
any more, and Looey says mebby it ain’t going to be one of the reg’lar
pifflicated kind. I seen Martha agin that day, too--twicet I has talks
with her. I told her about the doctor.

“Is he into a quest, do you think?” I asts her.

She says she thinks it is remorse fur some crime he has done. But I
couldn’t figger Doctor Kirby would of done none. So that night after the
show I says to him, innocent-like:

“Doctor Kirby, what is a quest?” He looks at me kind of queer.

“Wherefore,” says he, “this sudden thirst for enlightenment?”

“I jest run acrost the word accidental-like,” I told him.

He looks at me awful hard, his eyes jest natcherally digging into me.
I felt like he knowed I had set out to pump him. I wisht I hadn’t tried
it. Then he tells me a quest is a hunt. And I’m glad that’s over with.
But it ain’t. Fur purty soon he says:

“Danny, did you ever hear of Lady Clara Vere de Vere?”

“No,” I says, “who is she?”

“A lady friend of Lord Tennyson’s,” he says, “whose manners were above
reproach.”

“Well,” I says, “she sounds kind of like a medicine to me.”

“Lady Clara,” he says, “and all the other Vere de Veres, were people
with manners we should try to imitate. If Lady Clara had been here last
night when I was talking to myself, Danny, her manners wouldn’t have let
her listen to what I was talking about.”

“I didn’t listen!” I says. Fur I seen what he was driving at now with
them Vere de Veres. He thought I had ast him what a quest was because he
was on one. I was certain of that, now. He wasn’t quite sure what he had
been talking about, and he wanted to see how much I had hearn. I thinks
to myself it must be a awful funny kind of hunt he is on, if he only
hunts when he is in that fix. But I acted real innocent and like my
feelings was hurt, and he believed me. Purty soon he says, cheerful
like:

“There was a girl talking to you to-day, Danny.”

“Mebby they was,” I says, “and mebby they wasn’t.” But I felt my face
getting red all the same, and was mad because it did. He grinned kind of
aggervating at me and says some poetry at me about in the spring a young
man’s frenzy likely turns to thoughts of love.

“Well,” I says, kind of sheepish-like, “this is summer-time, and purty
nigh autumn.” Then I seen I’d jest as good as owned up I liked Martha,
and was kind of mad at myself fur that. But I told him some more about
her, too. Somehow I jest couldn’t help it. He laughs at me and goes on
into the tent.

I laid there and looked at the fire fur quite a spell, outside the tent.
I was thinking, if all them tales wasn’t jest dern foolishness, how I
wisht I would really find a dad that was a high-muckymuck and could come
back in an automobile and take her away. I laid there fur a long, long
time; it must of been fur a couple of hours. I supposed the doctor had
went to sleep.

But all of a sudden I looks up, and he is in the door of the tent
staring at me. I seen he had been in there at it hard agin, and
thinking, quiet-like, all this time. He stood there in the doorway of
the tent, with the firelight onto his face and his red beard, and his
arms stretched out, holding to the canvas and looking at me strange and
wild. Then he moved his hand up and down at me, and he says:

“If she’s fool enough to love you, treat her well--treat her well. For
if you don’t, you can never run away from the hell you’ll carry in your
own heart.”

And he kind of doubled up and pitched forward when he said that, and
if I hadn’t ketched him he would of fell right acrost the fire. He was
plumb pifflicated.



CHAPTER VII


Martha wouldn’t of took anything fur being around Miss Hampton, she
said. Miss Hampton was kind of quiet and sweet and pale looking, and
nobody ever thought of talking loud or raising any fuss when she was
around. She had enough money of her own to run herself on, and she kep’
to herself a good deal. She had come to that town from no one knowed
where, years ago, and bought that place. Fur all of her being so gentle
and easy and talking with one of them soft, drawly kind of voices,
Martha says, no one had ever dared to ast her about herself, though they
was a lot of women in that town that was wishful to.

But Martha said she knowed what Miss Hampton’s secret was, and she
hadn’t told no one, neither. Which she told me, and all the promising I
done about not telling would of made the cold chills run up your back,
it was so solemn. Miss Hampton had been jilted years ago, Martha said,
and the name of the jilter was David Armstrong. Well, he must of been
a low down sort of man. Martha said if things was only fixed in this
country like they ought to be, she would of sent a night to find that
David Armstrong. And that would of ended up in a mortal combat, and the
night would have cleaved him.

“Yes,” says I, “and then you would of married that there night, I
suppose.”

She says she would of.

“Well,” says I, “mebby you would of and mebby you wouldn’t of. If he
cleaved David Armstrong, that night would likely be arrested fur it.”

Martha says if he was she would wait outside his dungeon keep fur years
and years, till she was a old woman with gray in her hair, and every day
they would give lingering looks at each other through the window bars.
And they would be happy thata-way. And she would get her a white dove
and train it so it would fly up to that window and take in notes to him,
and he would send notes back that-away, and they would both be awful sad
and romanceful and contented doing that-a-way fur ever and ever.

Well, I never took no stock in them mournful ways of being happy. I
couldn’t of riz up to being a night fur Martha. She expected too much of
one. I thought it over fur a little spell without saying anything, and
I tried to make myself believe I would of liked all that dove business.
But it wasn’t no use pertending. I knowed I would get tired of it.

“Martha,” I says, “mebby these here nights is all right, and mebby they
ain’t. I never seen one, and I don’t know. And, mind you, I ain’t saying
a word agin their way of acting. I can’t say how I would of been myself,
if I had been brung up like them. But it looks to me, from some of the
things you’ve said about ‘em, they must have a dern fool streak in ‘em
somewheres.”

I was kind of jealous of them nights, I guess, or I wouldn’t of run ‘em
down that-a-way behind their backs. But the way she was always taking on
over them was calkelated to make me see I wasn’t knee-high to a duck in
Martha’s mind when one of them nights popped into her head. When I run
‘em down that-a-way, she says to the blind all things is blind, and if I
had any chivalry into me myself I’d of seen they wasn’t jest dern fools,
but noble, and seen it easy. And she sighed, like she’d looked fur
better things from me. When I hearn her do that I felt sorry I hadn’t
come up to her expectances. So I says:

“Martha, it’s no use pertending I could stay in one of them jails and
keep happy at it. I got to be outdoors. But I tell you what I can do,
if it will make you feel any better. If I ever happen to run acrost this
here David Armstrong, and he is anywheres near my size, I’ll lick him
fur you. And if he’s too hefty fur me to lick him fair,” I says, “and
I get a good chancet I will hit him with a piece of railroad iron fur
you.”

Of course, I knowed I would never find him. But what I said seemed to
brighten her up a little.

“But,” says I, “if I went too fur with it, and was hung fur it, how
would you feel then, Martha?”

Well, sir, that didn’t jar Martha none. She looked kind of dreamy and
said mebby she would go and jine a convent and be a nun. And when she
got to be the head nun she would build a chapel over the tomb where I
was buried in. And every year, on the day of the month I was hung on,
she would lead all the other nuns into that chapel, and the organ would
play mournful, and each nun as passed would lay down a bunch of white
roses onto my tomb. I reckon that orter made me feel good, but somehow
it didn’t.

So I changed the subject, and asts her why I ain’t seen Miss Hampton
around the place none. Martha says she has a bad sick headache and ain’t
been outside the house fur four or five days. I asts her why she don’t
wait on her. But she don’t want her to, Martha says. She’s been staying
in the house ever since we been in town, and jest wants to be let alone.
I thinks all that is kind of funny. And then I seen from the way Martha
is answering my questions that she is holding back something she would
like to tell, but don’t think she orter tell. I leaves her alone and
purty soon she says:

“Do you believe in ghosts?”

I tell her sometimes I think I don’t believe in ‘em, and sometimes I
think I do, but anyhow I would hate to see one. I asts her why does she
ast.

“Because,” she says, “because--but I hadn’t ought to tell you.”

“It’s daylight,” I says; “it’s no use being scared to tell now.”

“It ain’t that,” she says, “but it’s a secret.”

When she said it was a secret, I knowed she would tell. Martha liked
having her friends help her to keep a secret.

“I think Miss Hampton has seen one,” she says, finally, “and that her
staying indoors has something to do with that.”

Then she tells me. The night of the day after we camped there, her and
Miss Hampton was out fur a walk. We didn’t have any show that night.
They passed right by our camp, and they seen us there by the fire, all
three of us. But they was in the road in the dark, and we was all in the
light, so none of the three of us seen them. Miss Hampton was kind of
scared of us, first glance, fur she gasped and grabbed holt of Martha’s
arm all of a sudden so tight she pinched it. Which it was very natcheral
that she would be startled, coming across three strange men all of a
sudden at night around a turn in the road. They went along home, and
Martha went inside and lighted a lamp, but Miss Hampton lingered on the
porch fur a minute. Jest as she lit the lamp Martha hearn another little
gasp, or kind of sigh, from Miss Hampton out there on the porch. Then
they was the sound of her falling down. Martha ran out with the lamp,
and she was laying there. She had fainted and keeled over. Martha said
jest in the minute she had left her alone on the porch was when Miss
Hampton must of seen the ghost. Martha brung her to, and she was looking
puzzled and wild-like both to oncet. Martha asts her what is the matter.

“Nothing,” she says, rubbing her fingers over her forehead in a helpless
kind of way, “nothing.”

“You look like you had seen a ghost,” Martha tells her.

Miss Hampton looks at Martha awful funny, and then she says mebby she
_has_ seen a ghost, and goes along upstairs to bed. And since then she
ain’t been out of the house. She tells Martha it is a sick headache, but
Martha says she knows it ain’t. She thinks she is scared of something.

“Scared?” I says. “She wouldn’t see no more ghosts in the daytime.”

Martha says how do I know she wouldn’t? She knows a lot about ghosts of
all kinds, Martha does.

Horses and dogs can see them easier than humans, even in the daytime,
and it makes their hair stand up when they do. But some humans that have
the gift can see them in the daytime like an animal. And Martha asts me
how can I tell but Miss Hampton is like that?

“Well, then,” I says, “she must be a witch. And if she is a witch why is
she scared of them a-tall?”

But Martha says if you have second sight you don’t need to be a witch to
see them in the daytime.

Well, you can never tell about them ghosts. Some says one thing and some
says another. Old Mis’ Primrose, in our town, she always believed in ‘em
firm till her husband died. When he was dying they fixed it up he was
to come back and visit her. She told him he had to, and he promised. And
she left the front door open fur him night after night fur nigh a year,
in all kinds of weather; but Primrose never come. Mis’ Primrose says he
never lied to her, and he always done jest as she told him, and if he
could of come she knowed he would; and when he didn’t she quit believing
in ghosts. But they was others in our town said it didn’t prove nothing
at all. They said Primrose had really been lying to her all his life,
because she was so bossy he had to lie to keep peace in the fambly,
and she never ketched on. Well, if I was a ghost and had of been Mis’
Primrose’s husband when I was a human, I wouldn’t of come back neither,
even if she had of bully-ragged me into one of them death-bed promises.
I guess Primrose figgered he had earnt a rest.

If they is ghosts, what comfort they can get out of coming back where
they ain’t wanted and scaring folks is more’n I can see. It’s kind of
low down, I think, and foolish too. Them kind of ghosts is like these
here overgrown smart alecs that scares kids. They think they are mighty
cute, but they ain’t. They are jest foolish. A human, or a ghost either,
that does things like that is jest simply got no principle to him. I
hearn a lot of talk about ‘em, first and last, and I ain’t ready to say
they ain’t no ghosts, nor yet ready to say they is any. To say they is
any is to say something that is too plumb unlikely. And too many people
has saw them fur me to say they ain’t any. But if they is, or they
ain’t, so fur as I can see, it don’t make much difference. Fur they
never do nothing, besides scaring you, except to rap on tables and tell
fortunes, and such fool things. Which a human can do it all better and
save the expense of paying money to one of these here sperrit mediums
that travels around and makes ‘em perform. But all the same they has
been nights I has felt different about ‘em myself, and less hasty to run
‘em down. Well, it don’t do no good to speak harsh of no one, not even a
ghost or a ordinary dead man, and if I was to see a ghost, mebby I would
be all the scareder fur what I have jest wrote.

Well, with all the talking back and forth we done about them ghosts we
couldn’t agree. That afternoon it seemed like we couldn’t agree about
anything. I knowed we would be going away from there before long, and I
says to myself before I go I’m going to have that girl fur my girl, or
else know the reason why. No matter what I was talking about, that idea
was in the back of my head, and somehow it kind of made me want to
pick fusses with her, too. We was setting on a log, purty deep into the
woods, and there come a time when neither of us had said nothing fur
quite a spell. But after a while I says:

“Martha, we’ll be going away from here in two, three days now.”

She never said nothing.

“Will you be sorry?” I asts her.

She says she will be sorry.

“Well,” I says, “_why_ will you be sorry?”

I thought she would say because _I_ was going. And then I would be
finding out whether she liked me a lot. But she says the reason she will
be sorry is because there will be no one new to talk to about things
both has read. I was considerable took down when she said that.

“Martha,” I says, “it’s more’n likely I won’t never see you agin after I
go away.”

She says that kind of parting comes between the best of friends.

I seen I wasn’t getting along very fast, nor saying what I wanted to
say. I reckon one of them Sir Marmeluke fellers would of knowed what to
say. Or Doctor Kirby would. Or mebby even Looey would of said it better
than I could. So I was kind of mad with myself, and I says, mean-like:

“If you don’t care, of course, I don’t care, neither.”

She never answered that, so I gets up and makes like I am starting off.

“I was going to give you some of them there Injun feathers of mine to
remember me by,” I tells her, “but if you don’t want ‘em, there’s plenty
of others would be glad to take ‘em.”

But she says she would like to have them.

“Well,” I says, “I will bring them to you tomorrow afternoon.”

She says, “Thank you.”

Finally I couldn’t stand it no longer. I got brave all of a sudden, and
busted out: “Martha, I--I--I--”

But I got to stuttering, and my braveness stuttered itself away. And I
finishes up by saying:

“I like you a hull lot, Martha.” Which wasn’t jest exactly what I had
planned fur to say.

Martha, she says she kind of likes me, too.

“Martha,” I says, “I like you more’n any girl I ever run acrost before.”

She says, “Thank you,” agin. The way she said it riled me up. She said
it like she didn’t know what I meant, nor what I was trying to get out
of me. But she did know all the time. I knowed she did. She knowed I
knowed it, too. Gosh-dern it, I says to myself, here I am wasting all
this time jest _talking_ to her. The right thing to do come to me all of
a sudden, and like to took my breath away. But I done it. I grabbed her
and I kissed her.

Twice. And then agin. Because the first was on the chin on account of
her jerking her head back. And the second one she didn’t help me none.
But the third time she helped me a little. And the ones after that she
helped me considerable.

Well, they ain’t no use trying to talk about the rest of that afternoon.
I couldn’t rightly describe it if I wanted to. And I reckon it’s none of
anybody’s business.

Well, it makes you feel kind of funny. You want to go out and pick on
somebody about four sizes bigger’n you are and knock the socks off’n
him. It stands to reason others has felt that-a-way, but you don’t
believe it. You want to tell people about it one minute. The next minute
you have got chills and ague fur fear some one will guess it. And you
think the way you are about her is going to last fur always.

That evening, when I was cooking supper, I laughed every time I was
spoke to. When Looey and I was hitching up to drive down town to give
the show, one of the hosses stepped on his foot and I laughed at that,
and there was purty nigh a fight. And I was handling some bottles and
broke one and cut my hand on a piece of glass. I held it out fur a
minute dumb-like, with the blood and medicine dripping off of it, and
all of a sudden I busted out laughing agin. The doctor asts if I am
crazy. And Looey says he has thought I was from the very first, and some
night him and the doctor will be killed whilst asleep. One of the things
we have every night in the show is an Injun dance, and Looey and I sings
what the doctor calls the Siwash war chant, whirling round and round
each other, and making licks at each other with our tommyhawks, and
letting out sudden wild yips in the midst of that chant. That night I
like to of killed Looey with that tommyhawk, I was feeling so good. If
it had been a real one, instead of painted-up wood, I would of killed
Looey, the lick I give him. The worst part of that was that, after the
show, when we got back to camp and the hosses was picketed out fur the
night, I had to tell Looey all about how I felt fur an explanation of
why I hit him.

[Illustration: 0127]

Which it made Looey right low in his sperrits, and he shakes his head
and says no good will come of it.

“Did you ever hear of Romeo and Joliet?” he says:

“Mebby,” I says, “but what it was I hearn I can’t remember. What about
them?”

“Well,” he says, “they carried on the same as you. And now where are
they?”

“Well,” I says, “where are they?”

“In the tomb,” says Looey, very sad, like they was closte personal
friends of his’n. And he told me all about them and how Young Cobalt had
done fur them. But from what I could make out it all happened away back
in the early days. And shucks!--I didn’t care a dern, anyhow. I told him
so.

“Well,” he says, “It’s been the history of the world that it brings
trouble.” And he says to look at Damon and Pythias, and Othello and the
Merchant of Venus. And he named about a hundred prominent couples like
that out of Shakespeare’s works.

“But it ends happy sometimes,” I says.

“Not when it is true love it don’t,” says Looey. “Look at Anthony and
Cleopatra.”

“Yes,” I says, sarcastic like, “I suppose they are in the tomb, too?”

“They are,” says Looey, awful solemn.

“Yes,” I says, “and so is Adam and Eve and Dan and Burrsheba and all
the rest of them old-timers. But I bet they had a good time while they
lasted.”

Looey shakes his head solemn and sighs and goes to sleep very mournful,
like he has to give me up fur lost. But I can’t sleep none myself.
So purty soon I gets up and puts on my shoes and sneaks through the
wood-lot and through the gap in the fence by the apple tree and into
Miss Hampton’s yard.

It was a beauty of a moonlight night, that white and clear and clean you
could almost see to read by it, like all of everything had been scoured
as bright as the bottom of a tin pan. And the shadders was soft and
thick and velvety and laid kind of brownish-greeney on the grass. I
flopped down in the shadder of some lilac bushes and wondered which was
Martha’s window. I knowed she would be in bed long ago, but---- Well, I
was jest plumb foolish that night, and I couldn’t of kept away fur any
money. That moonlight had got into my head, it seemed like, and made
me drunk. But I would rather be looney that-a-way than to have as much
sense as King Solomon and all his adverbs. I was that looney that if I
had knowed any poetry I would of said it out loud, right up toward that
window. I never knowed why poetry was made up before that night. But the
only poetry I could think of was about there was a man named Furgeson
that lived on Market Street, and he had a one-eyed Thomas cat that
couldn’t well be beat. Which it didn’t seem to fit the case, so I didn’t
say her.

The porch of that house was part covered with vines, but they was kind
of gaped apart at one corner. As I laid there in the shadder of the
bushes I hearn a fluttering movement, light and gentle, on that porch.
Then, all of a sudden, I seen some one standing on the edge of the porch
where the vines was gaped apart, and the moonlight was falling onto
them. They must of come there awful soft and still. Whoever it was
couldn’t see into the shadder where I laid, that is, if it was a human
and not a ghost. Fur my first thought was it might be one of them ghosts
I had been running down so that very day, and mebby the same one Miss
Hampton seen on that very same porch. I thought I was in fur it then,
mebby, and I felt like some one had whispered to the back of my neck
it ought to be scared. And I _was_ scared clean up into my hair. I stared
hard, fur I couldn’t take my eyes away. Then purty soon I seen if it was
a ghost it must be a woman ghost. Fur it was dressed in light-coloured
clothes that moved jest a little in the breeze, and the clothes was so
near the colour of the moonlight they seemed to kind of silver into
it. You would of said it had jest floated there, and was waiting fur to
float away agin when the breeze blowed a little stronger, or the moon
drawed it.

It didn’t move fur ever so long. Then it leaned forward through the gap
in the vines, and I seen the face real plain. It wasn’t no ghost, it was
a lady. Then I knowed it must be Miss Hampton standing there. Away off
through the trees our camp fire sent up jest a dull kind of a glow. She
was standing there looking at that. I wondered why.



CHAPTER VIII


The next day we broke camp and was gone from that place, and I took away
with me the half of a ring me and Martha had chopped in two. We kept on
going, and by the time punkins and county fairs was getting ripe we was
into the upper left-hand corner of Ohio. And there Looey left us.

One day Doctor Kirby and me was walking along the main street of a
little town and we seen a bang-up funeral percession coming. It must of
been one of the Grand Army of the Republicans, fur they was some of the
old soldiers in buggies riding along behind, and a big string of people
follering in more buggies and some on foot. Everybody was looking mighty
sollum. But they was one man setting beside the undertaker on the seat
of the hearse that was looking sollumer than them all. It was Looey, and
I’ll bet the corpse himself would of felt proud and happy and contented
if he could of knowed the style Looey was giving that funeral.

It wasn’t nothing Looey done, fur he didn’t do nothing but jest set
there with his arms folded onto his bosom and look sad. But he done _that_
better than any one else. He done it so well that you forgot the corpse
was the chief party to that funeral. Looey took all the glory from him.
He had jest natcherally stole that funeral away from its rightful owner
with his enjoyment of it. He seen the doctor and me as the hearse went
by our corner, but he never let on. A couple of hours later Looey comes
into camp and says he is going to quit.

The doctor asts him if he has inherited money.

“No,” says Looey, “but my aunt has given me a chancet to go into
business.”

Looey says he was born nigh there, and was prowling around town the day
before and run acrost an old aunt of his’n he had forgot all about.
She is awful respectable and religious and ashamed of him being into
a travelling show. And she has offered to lend him enough to buy a
half-share in a business.

“Well,” says the doctor, “I hope it will be something you are fitted
for and will enjoy. But I’ve noticed that after a man gets the habit of
roaming around this terrestial ball it’s mighty hard to settle down and
watch his vine and fig tree grow.”

Looey smiles in a sad sort of a way, which he seldom smiled fur
anything, and says he guesses he’ll like the business. He says they
ain’t many businesses he could take to. Most of them makes you forget
this world is but a fleeting show. But he has found a business which
keeps you reminded all the time that dust is dust and ash to ashes shalt
return. When he first went into the medicine business, he said, he was
drawed to it by the diseases and the sudden dyings-off it always kept
him in mind of. He thought they wasn’t no other business could lay over
it fur that kind of comfort. But he has found out his mistake.

“What kind of business are you going into?” asts the doctor.

“I am going to be an undertaker,” says Looey. “My aunt says this town
needs the right kind of an undertaker bad.”

Mr. Wilcox, the undertaker that town has, is getting purty old and
shaky, Looey says, and young Mr. Wilcox, his son, is too light-minded
and goes at things too brisk and airy to give it the right kind of a
send-off. People don’t want him joking around their corpses and he is
a fat young man and can’t help making puns even in the presence of the
departed. Old Mr. Wilcox’s eyesight is getting so poor he made a scandal
in that town only the week before. He was composing a departed’s face
into a last smile, but he went too fur with it, and give the departed
one of them awful mean, devilish kind of grins, like he had died with
a bad temper on. By the time the departed’s fambly had found it out,
things had went too fur, and the face had set that-a-way, so it wasn’t
safe to try to change it any.

Old Mr. Wilcox had several brands of last looks. One was called:
“Bear Up, for We Will Meet Again.” The one that had went wrong was his
favourite look, named: “O Death, Where is Thy Victory?”

Looey’s aunt says she will buy him a partnership if she is satisfied he
can fill the town’s needs. They have a talk with the Wilcoxes, and he
rides on the hearse that day fur a try-out. His aunt peeks out behind
her bedroom curtains as the percession goes by her house, and when she
sees the style Looey is giving to that funeral, and how easy it comes
to him, that settles it with her on the spot. And it seems the hull dern
town liked it, too, including the departed’s fambly.

Looey says they is a lot of chancet fur improvements in the undertaking
game by one whose heart is in his work, and he is going into that
business to make a success of it, and try and get all the funeral trade
fur miles around. He reads us an advertisement of the new firm he has
been figgering out fur that town’s weekly paper. I cut a copy out when
it was printed, and it is about the genteelest thing like that I even
seen, as follers:

[Illustration: 0136]


WILCOX AND SIMMS Invite Your Patronage

This earth is but a fleeting show, and the blank-winged angels wait for
all. It is always a satisfaction to remember that all possible has been
done for the deceased.

     See Our New Line of Coffins
     Lined Caskets a Specialty
     Lodge Work Solicited

Time and tide wait for no man, and his days are few and full of
troubles. The paths of glory lead but to the grave, and none can tell
when mortal feet may stumble.

When in Town Drop in and Inspect Our New Embalming Outfit. It is a
Pleasure to Show Goods and Tools Even if Your Family Needs no Work Done
Just Yet.

Outfits for mourners who have been bereaved on short notice a specialty.
We take orders for tombstones. Look at our line of shrouds, robes, and
black suits for either sex and any age. Give us just one call, and you
will entrust future embalmings and obsequies in your family to no other
firm.

WILCOX AND SIMMS Main Street, Near Depot


The doctor, he reads it over careful and says she orter drum up trade,
all right. Looey tells us that mebby, if he can get that town educated
up to it, he will put in a creamatory, where he will burn them, too, but
will go slow, fur that there sollum and beautiful way of returning ash
to ashes might make some prejudice in such a religious town.

The last we seen of Looey was a couple of days later when we told him
good-bye in his shop. Old Mr. Wilcox was explaining to him the science
of them last looks he was so famous at when he was a younger man. Young
Mr. Wilcox was laying on a table fur Looey to practise on, and Looey was
learning fast. But he nearly broke down when he said good-bye, fur he
liked the doctor.

“Doc,” he says, “you’ve been a good friend, and I won’t never forget
you. They ain’t much I can do, and in this deceitful world words is less
than actions. But if you ever was to die within a hundred miles of me,
I’d go,” he says, “and no other hands but mine should lay you out. And
it wouldn’t cost you a cent, either. Nor you neither, Danny.”

We thanked him kindly fur the offer, and went.

The next town we come to there was a county fair, and the doctor run
acrost an old pal of his’n who had a show on the grounds and wanted to
hire him fur what he called a ballyhoo man. Which was the first I ever
hearn them called that, but I got better acquainted with them since.
They are the fellers that stands out in front and gets you all excited
about the Siamese twins or the bearded lady or the snake-charmer or the
Circassian beauties or whatever it is inside the tent, as represented
upon the canvas. The doctor says he will do it fur a week, jest fur fun,
and mebby pick up another feller to take Looey’s place out there.

This feller’s name is Watty Sanders, and his wife is a fat lady in his
own show and very good-natured when not intoxicated nor mad at Watty. She
was billed on the curtains outside fur five hundred and fifty pounds,
and Watty says she really does weigh nigh on to four hundred. But being
a fat lady’s husband ain’t no bed of rosy ease at that, Watty tells
the doctor. It’s like every other trade--it has its own pertic’ler
responsibilities and troubles. She is a turrible expense to Watty on
account of eating so much. The tales that feller told of how hard he
has to hustle showing her off in order to support her appetite would of
drawed tears from a pawnbroker’s sign, as Doctor Kirby says. Which he
found it cheaper fur his hull show to board and sleep in the tent, and
we done likewise.

Well, I got a job with that show myself. Watty had a wild man canvas
but no wild man, so he made me an offer and I took him up. I was from
Borneo, where they’re all supposed to be captured. Jest as Doctor Kirby
would get to his talk about how the wild man had been ketched after
great struggle and expense, with four men killed and another crippled,
there would be an awful rumpus on the inside of the tent, with wild
howlings and the sound of revolvers shot off and a woman screaming. Then
I would come busting out all blacked up from head to heel with no more
clothes on than the law pervided fur, yipping loud and shaking a big
spear and rolling my eyes, and Watty would come rushing after me firing
his revolver. I would make fur the doctor and draw my spear back to jab
it clean through him, and Watty would grab my arm. And the doctor would
whirl round and they would wrastle me to the ground and I would be
handcuffed and dragged back into the tent, still howling and struggling
to break loose. On the inside my part of the show was to be wild in a
cage. I would be chained to the floor, and every now and then I would
get wilder and rattle my chains and shake the bars and make jumps at the
crowd and carry on, and make believe I was too mad to eat the pieces of
raw meat Watty throwed into the cage.

Watty had a snake-charmer woman, with an awful long, bony kind of neck,
working fur him, and another feller that was her husband and eat glass.
The show opened up with them two doing what they said was a comic turn.
Then the fat lady come on. Whilst everybody was admiring her size, and
looking at the number of pounds on them big cheat scales Watty weighed
her on, the long-necked one would be changing to her snake clothes.
Which she only had one snake, and he had been in the business so long,
and was so kind of worn out and tired with being charmed so much, it
always seemed like a pity to me the way she would take and twist him
around. I guess they never was a snake was worked harder fur the little
bit he got to eat, nor got no sicker of a woman’s society than poor old
Reginald did. After Reginald had been charmed a while, it would be the
glass eater’s turn. Which he really eat it, and the doctor says that
kind always dies before they is fifty. I never knowed his right name,
but what he went by was The Human Ostrich.

Watty’s wife was awful jealous of Mrs. Ostrich, fur she got the idea
she was carrying on with Watty. One night I hearn an argument from the
fenced-off part of the tent Watty and his wife slept in. She was setting
on Watty’s chest and he was gasping fur mercy.

“You know it ain’t true,” says Watty, kind of smothered-like.

“It is,” says she, “you own up it is!” And she give him a jounce.

“No, darling,” he gets out of him, “you know I never could bear them
thin, scrawny kind of women.” And he begins to call her pet names of
all kinds and beg her please, if she won’t get off complete, to set
somewheres else a minute, fur his chest he can feel giving way, and his
ribs caving in. He called her his plump little woman three or four
times and she must of softened up some, fur she moved and his voice come
stronger, but not less meek and lowly. And he follers it up:

“Dolly, darling,” he says, “I bet I know something my little woman don’t
know.”

“What is it?” the fat lady asts him.

[Illustration: 0143]

“You don’t know what a cruel, weak stomach your hubby has got,” Watty
says, awful coaxing like, “or you wouldn’t bear down quite so hard onto
it--please, Dolly!”

She begins to blubber and say he is making fun of her big size, and if
he is mean to her any more or ever looks at another woman agin she will
take anti-fat and fade away to nothing and ruin his show, and it is
awful hard to be made a joke of all her life and not have no steady home
nor nothing like other women does.

“You know I worship every pound of you, little woman,” says Watty,
still coaxing. “Why can’t you trust me? You know, Dolly, darling, I
wouldn’t take your weight in gold for you.” And he tells her they never
was but once in all his life he has so much as turned his head to look
at another woman, and that was by way of a plutonic admiration, and no
flirting intended, he says. And even then it was before he had met his
own little woman. And that other woman, he says, was plump too, fur he
wouldn’t never look at none but a plump woman.

“What did she weigh?” asts Watty’s wife. He tells her a measly little
three hundred pound.

“But she wasn’t refined like my little woman,” says Watty, “and when I
seen that I passed her up.” And inch by inch Watty coaxed her clean off
of him.

But the next day she hearn him and Mrs. Ostrich giggling about
something, and she has a reg’lar tantrum, and jest fur meanness goes out
and falls down on the race track, pertending she has fainted, and they
can’t move her no ways, not even roll her. But finally they rousted her
out of that by one of these here sprinkling carts backing up agin her
and turning loose.

But aside from them occasional mean streaks Dolly was real nice, and I
kind of got to liking her. She tells me that because she is so fat no
one won’t take her serious like a human being, and she wisht she was
like other women and had a fambly. That woman wanted a baby, too, and I
bet she would of been good to it, fur she was awful good to animals. She
had been big from a little girl, and never got no sympathy when sick,
nor nothing, and even whilst she played with dolls as a kid she knowed
she looked ridiculous, and was laughed at. And by jings!--they was
the funniest thing come to light before we left that crowd. That poor,
derned, old, fat fool _had_ a doll yet, all hid away, and when she was
alone she used to take it out and cuddle it. Well, Dolly never had many
friends, and you couldn’t blame her much if she did drink a little too
much now and then, or get mad at Watty fur his goings-on and kneel down
on him whilst he was asleep. Them was her only faults and I liked the
old girl. Yet I could see Watty had his troubles too.

That show busted up before the fair closed. Fur one day Watty’s wife
gets mad at Mrs. Ostrich and tries to set on her. And then Mrs. Ostrich
gets mad too, and sicks Reginald onto her. Watty’s wife is awful scared
of Reginald, who don’t really have ambition enough to bite no one, let
alone a lady built so round everywhere he couldn’t of got a grip on her.
And as fur as wrapping himself around her and squashing her to death,
Reginald never seen the day he could reach that fur. Reginald’s feelings
is plumb friendly toward Dolly when he is turned loose, but she don’t
know that, and she has some hysterics and faints in earnest this time.
Well, they was an awful hullaballo when she come to, and fur the sake of
peace in the fambly Watty has to fire Mr. and Mrs. Ostrich and poor old
Reginald out of their jobs, and the show is busted. So Doctor Kirby and
me lit out fur other parts agin.



CHAPTER IX


We was jogging along one afternoon not fur from a good-sized town at the
top of Ohio, right on the lake, when we run acrost some remainders of
a busted circus riding in a stake and chain wagon. They was two
fellers--both jugglers, acrobats, and tumblers--and a balloon. The
circus had busted without paying them nothing but promises fur months
and months, and they had took the team and wagon and balloon by
attachment, they said. They was carting her from the little burg the
show busted in to that good-sized town on the lake. They would sell the
team and wagon there and get money enough to put an advertisement in
the Billboard, which is like a Bible to them showmen, that they had a
balloon to sell and was at liberty.

One of them was the slimmest, lightest-footed, quickest feller you ever
seen, with a big nose and dark complected, and his name was Tobias. The
other was heavier and blonde complected. His name was Dobbs, he said,
and they was the Blanchet Brothers. Doctor Kirby and them got real well
acquainted in about three minutes. We drove on ahead and got into the
town first.

The doctor says that balloon is jest wasted on them fellers. They can’t
go up in her, not knowing that trade, but still they ought to be some
way fur them to make a little stake out of it before it was sold.

The next evening we run acrost them fellers on the street, and they was
feeling purty blue. They hadn’t been able to sell that team and wagon,
which it was eating its meals reg’lar in a livery stable, and they had
been doing stunts in the street that day and passing around the hat, but
not getting enough fur to pay expenses.

“Where’s the balloon?” asts the doctor. And I seen he was sicking his
intellects onto the job of making her pay.

“In the livery stable with the wagon,” they tells him.

He says he is going to figger out a way to help them boys. They is like
all circus performers, he says--they jest knows their own acts, and
talks about ‘em all the time, and studies up ways to make ‘em better,
and has got no more idea of business outside of that than a rabbit. We
all went to the livery stable and overhauled that balloon. It was an
awful job, too. But they wasn’t a rip in her, and the parachute was jest
as good as new.

“There’s no reason why we can’t give a show of our own,” says Doctor
Kirby, “with you boys and Danny and me and that balloon. What we want
is a lot with a high board fence around it, like a baseball grounds,
and the chance to tap a gas main.” He says he’ll be willing to take a
chancet on it, even paying the gas company real money to fill her up.

What the Doctor didn’t know about starting shows wasn’t worth knowing.
He had even went in for the real drama in his younger days now and then.

“One of my theatrical productions came very near succeeding, too,” he
says.

It was a play he says, in which the hero falls in love with a pair of
Siamese twins and commits suicide because he can’t make a choice between
them.

“We played it as comedy in the big towns and tragedy in the little
ones,” he says. “But like a fool I booked it for two weeks of
middle-sized towns and it broke us.”

The next day he finds a lot that will do jest fine. It has been used fur
a school playgrounds, but the school has been moved and the old building
is to be tore down. He hired the place cheap. And he goes and talks the
gas company into giving him credit to fill that balloon. Which I kept
wondering what was the use of filling her, fur none of the four of
us had ever went up in one. And when I seen the handbills he had had
printed I wondered all the more. They read as follers:

[Illustration: 0150]

Kirby’s Komedy Kompany and Open Air Circus

Presenting a Peerless Personnel of Artistic Attractions

Greatest in the Galaxy of Gaiety, is

Hartley L. Kirby

Monologuist and minstrel, dancer and vaudevillian in his terpsichorean
travesties, buoyant burlesques, inimitable imitations, screaming
impersonations, refined comedy sketches and popular song hits of the
day.


The Blanchet Brothers

Daring, Dazzling, Danger-Loving, Death-Defying Demons

Joyous jugglers, acrobatic artists, constrictorial contortionists,
exquisite equilibrists, in their marvellous, mysterious, unparalleled
performances.


Umslopogus The Patagonian Chieftain

The lowest type of human intellect

This formerly ferocious fiend has so far succumbed to the softer wiles
of civilization that he is no longer a cannibal, and it is now safe to
put him on exhibition. But to prevent accidents he is heavily manacled,
and the public is warned not to come too near.


     Balloon! Balloon!! Balloon!!!

     The management also presents the balloon of

     Prof. Alonzo Ackerman The Famous Aeronaut

     in which he has made his

     Wonderful Ascension and Parachute Drop

     many times, reaching remarkable altitudes

     Balloon! Balloon!! Balloon!!!

     Saturday, 3 P. M. Old Vandegrift School Lot


     Admission 50 Cents


Well, fur a writer he certainly laid over Looey, Doctor Kirby did--more
cheerful-like, you might say. I seen right off I was to be the
Patagonian Chieftain. I was getting more and more of an actor right
along--first an Injun, then a wild Borneo, and now a Patagonian.

“But who is this Alonzo Ackerman?” I asts him.

“Celebrated balloonist,” says he, “and the man that invented parachutes.
They eat out of his hand.”

“Where is he?” asts I.

“How should I know?” he says.

“How is he going up, then?” I asts.

The doctor chuckles and says it is a good bill, a better bill than he
thought; that it is getting in its work already. He says to me to read
it careful and see if it says Alonzo Ackerman is going up. Well, it
don’t. But any one would of thought so the first look. I reckon that
bill was some of a liar herself, not lying outright, but jest hinting a
lie. They is a lot of mean, stingy-souled kind of people wouldn’t never
lie to help a friend, but Doctor Kirby wasn’t one of ‘em.

“But,” I says, “when that crowd finds out Alonzo ain’t going up they
will be purty mad.”

“Oh,” says he, “I don’t think so. The American public are a good-natured
set of chuckle-heads, mostly. If they get sore I’ll talk ‘em out of it.”

If he had any faults at all--and mind you, I ain’t saying Doctor Kirby
had any--the one he had hardest was the belief he could talk any crowd
into any notion, or out of it, either. And he loved to do it jest fur
the fun of it. He’d rather have the feeling he was doing that than the
money any day. He was powerful vain about that gab of his’n, Doctor
Kirby was.

The four of us took around about five thousand bills. The doctor says
they is nothing like giving yourself a chancet. And Saturday morning we
got the balloon filled up so she showed handsome, tugging away there at
her ropes. But we had a dern mean time with that balloon, too.

The doctor says if we have good luck there may be as many as three, four
hundred people.

But Jerusalem! They was two, three times that many. By the time the
show started I reckon they was nigh a thousand there. The doctor and
the Blanchet Brothers was tickled. When they quit coming fast the doctor
left the gate and made a little speech, telling all about the wonderful
show, and the great expense it was to get it together, and all that.

They was a rope stretched between the crowd and us. Back of that was the
Blanchet Brothers’ wagon and our wagon, and our little tent. I was jest
inside the tent with chains on. Back of everything else was the balloon.

Well, the doctor he done a lot of songs and things as advertised. Then
the Blanchet Brothers done some of their acts. They was really fine
acts, too. Then come some more of Doctor Kirby’s refined comedy, as
advertised. Next, more Blanchet. Then a lecture about me by the doctor.
All in all it takes up about an hour and a half. Then the doctor makes
a mighty nice little talk, and wishes them all good afternoon, thanking
them fur their kind intentions and liberal patronage, one and all.

“But when will the balloon go up?” asts half a dozen at oncet.

“The balloon?” asts Doctor Kirby, surprised.

“Balloon! Balloon!” yells a kid. And the hull crowd took it up and
yelled: “Balloon! Balloon! Balloon!” And they crowded up closte to that
rope.

Doctor Kirby has been getting off the wagon, but he gets back on her,
and stretches his arms wide, and motions of ‘em all to come close.

“Ladies and gentlemen,” he says, “please to gather near--up here,
good people--and listen! Listen to what I have to say--harken to the
utterings of my voice! There has been a misunderstanding here! There has
been a misconstruction! There has been, ladies and gentlemen, a woeful
lack of comprehension here!”

It looked to me like they was beginning to understand more than he meant
them to. I was wondering how it would all come out, but he never lost
his nerve.

“Listen,” he says, very earnest, “listen to me. Somehow the idea seems
to have gone forth that there would be a balloon ascension here this
afternoon. How, I do not know, for what we advertised, ladies and
gentlemen, was that the balloon used by Prof. Alonzo Ackerman, the
illustrious aeronaut, would be _UPON EXHIBITION_. And there she is, ladies
and gentlemen, there she is, for every eye to see and gladden with the
sight of--right before you, ladies and gentlemen--the balloon of Alonzo
Ackerman, the wonderful voyager of the air, exactly as represented.
During their long career Kirby and Company have never deceived the
public. Others may, but Kirby and Company are like Caesar’s wife--Kirby
and Company are above suspicion. It is the province of Kirby’s Komedy
Kompany, ladies and gentlemen, to spread the glad tidings of innocent
amusement throughout the length and breadth of this fair land of ours.
And there she is before you, the balloon as advertised, the gallant ship
of the air in which the illustrious Ackerman made so many voyages before
he sailed at last into the Great Beyond! You can see her, ladies and
gentlemen, straining at her cords, anxious to mount into the heavens
and be gone! It is an education in itself, ladies and gentlemen, a moral
education, and well worth coming miles to see. Think of it--think of
it--the Ackerman balloon--and then think that the illustrious Ackerman
himself--he was my personal friend, ladies and gentlemen, and a true
friend sticketh closer than a brother--the illustrious Ackerman is dead.
The balloon, ladies and gentlemen, is there, but Ackerman is gone to his
reward. Look at that balloon, ladies and gentlemen, and tell me if you
can, why should the spirit of mortals be proud? For the man that rode
her like a master and tamed her like she was a dove lies cold and dead
in a western graveyard, ladies and gentlemen, and she is here, a useless
and an idle vanity without the mind that made her go!”

Well, he went on and he told a funny story about Alonzo, which I don’t
believe they ever was no Alonzo Ackerman, and a lot of ‘em laughed;
and he told a pitiful story, and they got sollum agin, and then another
funny story. Well, he had ‘em listening, and purty soon most of the
crowd is feeling in a good humour toward him, and one feller yells out:

“Go it--you’re a hull show yourself!” And some joshes him, but they
don’t seem to be no trouble in the air. When they all look to be in a
good humour he holds up a bill and asts how many has them. Many has. He
says that is well, and then he starts to telling another story. But
in the middle of the story that hull dern crowd is took with a fit of
laughing. They has looked at the bill closet, and seen they is sold, and
is taking it good-natured. And still shouting and laughing most of them
begins to start along off. And I thought all chancet of trouble was over
with. But it wasn’t.

Fur they is always a natcheral born kicker everywhere, and they was one
here, too.

He was a lean feller with a sticking out jaw, and one of his eyes was in
a kind of a black pocket, and he was jest natcherally laying it off to
about a dozen fellers that was in a little knot around him.

The doctor sees the main part of the crowd going and climbs down off’n
the wagon. As he does so that hull bunch of about a dozen moves in under
the rope, and some more that was going out seen it, and stopped and come
back.

“Perfessor,” says the man with the patch over his eye to Doctor Kirby,
“you say this man Ackerman is dead?”

“Yes,” says the doctor, eying him over, “he’s dead.”

“How did he die?” asts the feller.

“He died hard, I understand,” says the doctor, careless-like.

“Fell out of his balloon?”

“Yes.”

“This aeronaut trade is a dangerous trade, I hear,” says the feller with
the patch on his eye.

“They say so,” says Doctor Kirby, easy-like.

“Was you ever an aeronaut yourself?” asts the feller.

“No,” says the doctor.

“Never been up in a balloon?”

“No.”

“Well, you’re going up in one this afternoon!”

“What do you mean?” asts Doctor Kirby.

“We’ve come out to see a balloon ascension--and we’re going to see it,
too.”

And with that the hull crowd made a rush at the doctor.

Well, I been in fights before that, and I been in fights since then. But
I never been in no harder one. The doctor and the two Blanchet brothers
and me managed to get backed up agin the fence in a row when the rush
come. I guess I done my share, and I guess the Blanchet brothers done
theirn, too. But they was too many of ‘em for us--too dern many. It
wouldn’t of ended as quick as it did if Doctor Kirby hadn’t gone clean
crazy. His back was to the fence, and he cleaned out everything in front
of him, and then he give a wild roar jest like a bull and rushed that
hull gang--twenty men, they was--with his head down. He caught two
fellers, one in each hand, and he cracked their heads together, and he
caught two more, and done the same. But he orter never took his back
away from that fence. The hull gang closed in on him, and down he went
at the bottom of a pile. I was awful busy myself, but I seen that pile
moving and churning. Then I made a big mistake myself. I kicked a feller
in the stomach, and another feller caught my leg, and down I went. Fur
a half a minute I never knowed nothing. And when I come to I was all
mashed about the face, and two fellers was sitting on me.

The crowd was tying Doctor Kirby to that parachute. They straddled
legs over the parachute bar, and tied his feet below it. He was still
fighting, but they was too many fur him. They left his arms untied, but
they held ‘em, and then--

Then they cut her loose. She went up like she was shot from a gun, and
as she did Doctor Kirby took a grip on a feller’s arm that hadn’t let
loose quick enough and lifted him plumb off’n the ground. He slewed
around on the trapeze bar with the feller’s weight, and slipped head
downward. And as he slipped he give that feller a swing and let loose
of him, and then ketched himself by the crook of one knee. The feller
turned over twicet in the air and landed in a little crumpled-up pile on
the ground, and never made a sound.

The fellers that had holt of me forgot me and stood up, and I stood up
too, and looked. The balloon was rising fast. Doctor Kirby was trying to
pull himself up to the trapeze bar, twisting and squirming and having
a hard time of it, and shooting higher every second. I reckoned he
couldn’t fall complete, fur where his feet was tied would likely hold
even if his knee come straight--but he would die mebby with his head
filling up with blood. But finally he made a squirm and raised himself a
lot and grabbed the rope at one side of the bar. And then he reached and
got the rope on the other side, and set straddle of her. And jest as he
done that the wind ketched the balloon good and hard, and she turned out
toward Lake Erie. It was too late fur him to pull the rope that sets the
parachute loose then, and drop onto the land.

I rushed out of that schoolhouse yard and down the street toward the
lake front, and run, stumbling along and looking up. She was getting
smaller every minute. And with my head in the air looking up I was
running plumb to the edge of the water before I knowed it.

She was away out over the lake now, and awful high, and going fast
before the wind, and the doctor was only a speck. And as I stared at
that speck away up in the sky I thought this was a mean world to live
in. Fur there was the only real friend I ever had, and no way fur me to
help him. He had learnt me to read, and bought me good clothes, and made
me know they was things in the world worth travelling around to see, and
made me feel like I was something more than jest Old Hank Walters’s dog.
And I guessed he would be drownded and I would never see him agin now.
And all of a sudden something busted loose inside of me, and I sunk
down there at the edge of the water, sick at my stomach, and weak and
shivering.



CHAPTER X


I didn’t exactly faint there, but things got all mixed fur me, and when
they was straightened out agin I was in a hospital. It seems I had
been considerable stepped on in that fight, and three ribs was broke. I
knowed I was hurting, but I was so interested in what was happening to
the doctor the hull hurt never come to me till the balloon was way out
over the lake.

But now I was in a plaster cast, and before I got out of that I was in a
fever. I was some weeks getting out of there.

I tried to get some word of Doctor Kirby, but couldn’t. Nothing had been
heard of him or the balloon. The newspapers had had stuff about it fur a
day or two, and they guessed the body might come to light sometime. But
that was all. And I didn’t know where to hunt nor how.

The hosses and wagon and tent and things worried me some, too. They
wasn’t mine, and so I couldn’t sell ‘em. And they wasn’t no good to me
without Doctor Kirby. So I tells the man that owns the livery stable to
use the team fur its board and keep it till Doctor Kirby calls fur it,
and if he never does mebby I will sometime.

I didn’t want to stay in that town or I could of got a job in the livery
stable. They offered me one, but I hated that town. I wanted to light
out. I didn’t much care where to.

Them Blanchet Brothers had left a good share of the money we took in
at the balloon ascension with the hospital people fur me before they
cleared out. But before I left that there town I seen they was one thing
I had to do to make myself easy in my mind. So I done her.

That was to hunt up that feller with his eye in the patch. It took me
a week to find him. He lived down near some railroad yards. I might of
soaked him with a coupling link and felt a hull lot better. But I didn’t
guess it would do to pet and pamper my feelings too much. So I does it
with my fists in a quiet place, and does it very complete, and leaves
that town in a cattle car, feeling a hull lot more contented in my mind.

Then they was a hull dern year I didn’t stay nowhere very long, nor
work at any one job too long, neither. I jest worked from place to place
seeing things--big towns and rivers and mountains. Working here and
there, and loafing and riding blind baggages and freight trains between
jobs, I covered a lot of ground that year, and made some purty big
jumps, and got acquainted with some awful queer folks, first and last.

But the worst of that is lots of people gets to thinking I am a hobo.
Even one or two judges in police courts I got acquainted with had that
there idea of me. I always explains that I am not one, and am jest
travelling around to see things, and working when I feels like it, and
ain’t no bum. But frequent I am not believed. And two, three different
times I gets to the place where I couldn’t hardly of told myself from a
hobo, if I hadn’t of knowed I wasn’t one.

I got right well acquainted with some of them hobos, too. As fur as I
can see, they is as much difference in them as in other humans. Some
travels because they likes to see things, and some because they hates to
work, and some because they is in the habit and can’t stop it. Well, I
know myself it’s purty hard after while to stop it, fur where would you
stop at? What excuse is they to stop one place more’n another? I met all
kinds of ‘em, and oncet I got in fur a week with a couple of real Johnny
Yeggs that is both in the pen now. I hearn a feller say one time there
is some good in every man. I went the same way as them two yeggmen a
hull dern week to try and find out where the good in ‘em was. I guess
they must be some mistake somewheres, fur I looked hard and I watched
closet and I never found it. They is many kinds of hobos and tramps,
perfessional and amachure, and lots of kinds of bums, and lots of young
fellers working their way around to see things, like I was, and lots of
working men in hard luck going from place to place, and all them kinds
is humans. But the real yeggman ain’t even a dog.

And oncet I went all the way from Chicago to Baltimore with a serious,
dern fool that said he was a soshyologest, whatever them is, and was
going to put her all into a book about the criminal classes. He worked
hard trying to get at the reason I was a hobo. Which they wasn’t no
reason, fur I wasn’t no hobo. But I didn’t want to disappoint that
feller and spoil his book fur him. So I tells him things. Things not
overly truthful, but very full of crime. About a year afterward I was
into one of these here Andrew Carnegie lib’aries with the names of the
old-time presidents all chiselled along the top and I seen the hull
dern thing in print. He said of me the same thing I have said about them
yeggmen. If all he met joshed that feller the same as me, that book must
of been what you might call misleading in spots.

One morning I woke up in a good-sized town in Illinoise, not a hundred
miles from where I was raised, without no money, and my clothes not much
to look at, and no job. I had been with a railroad show fur about two
weeks, driving stakes and other rough work, and it had went off and left
me sleeping on the ground. Circuses never waits fur nothing nor cares a
dern fur no one. I tried all day around town fur to get some kind of a
job. But I was looking purty rough and I couldn’t land nothing. Along in
the afternoon I was awful hungry.

I was feeling purty low down to have to ast fur a meal, but finally I
done it.

I dunno how I ever come to pick out such a swell-looking house, but I
makes a little talk at the back door and the Irish girl she says, “Come
in,” and into the kitchen I goes.

“It’s Minnesota you’re working toward?” asts she, pouring me out a cup
of coffee.

She is thinking of the wheat harvest where they is thousands makes fur
every fall. But none of ‘em fur me. That there country is full of them
Scandiluvian Swedes and Norwegians, and they gets into the field before
daylight and stays there so long the hired man’s got to milk the cows by
moonlight.

“I been acrost the river into I’way,” I says, “a-working at my trade,
and now I’m going back to Chicago to work at it some more.”

“What might your trade be?” she asts, sizing me up careful; and I thinks
I’ll hand her one to chew on she ain’t never hearn tell of before.

“I’m a agnostic by trade,” I says. I spotted that there word in a
religious book one time, and that’s the first chancet I ever has to try
it on any one. You can’t never tell what them reg’lar sockdologers is
going to do till you tries them.

“I see,” says she. But I seen she didn’t see. And I didn’t help her
none. She would of ruther died than to let on she didn’t see. The Irish
is like that. Purty soon she says:

“Ain’t that the dangerous kind o’ work, though!”

“It is,” I says. And says nothing further.

She sets down and folds her arms, like she was thinking of it, watching
my hands closet all the time I was eating, like she’s looking fur scars
where something slipped when I done that agnostic work. Purty soon she
says:

“Me brother Michael was kilt at it in the old country. He was the most
vinturesome lad of thim all!”

“Did it fly up and hit him?” I asts her. I was wondering w’ether she is
making fun of me or am I making fun of her. Them Irish is like that, you
can never tell which.

“No,” says she, “he fell off of it. And I’m thinking you don’t know what
it is yourself.” And the next thing I know I’m eased out o’ the back
door and she’s grinning at me scornful through the crack of it.

So I was walking slow around toward the front of the house thinking how
the Irish was a great nation, and what shall I do now, anyhow? And I
says to myself: “Danny, you was a fool to let that circus walk off and
leave you asleep in this here town with nothing over you but a barbed
wire fence this morning. Fur what _are_ you going to do next? First thing
you know, you _will_ be a reg’lar tramp, which some folks can’t be made
to see you ain’t now.” And jest when I was thinking that, a feller comes
down the front steps of that house on the jump and nabs me by the coat
collar.

“Did you come out of this house?” he asts.

“I did,” I says, wondering what next.

“Back in you go, then,” he says, marching me forward toward them front
steps, “they’ve got smallpox in there.”

I like to of jumped loose when he says that.

“Smallpox ain’t no inducement to me, mister,” I tells him. But he
twisted my coat collar tight and dug his thumbs into my neck, all the
time helping me onward with his knee from behind, and I seen they wasn’t
no use pulling back. I could probable of licked that man, but they’s no
system in mixing up with them well-dressed men in towns where they think
you are a tramp. The judge will give you the worst of it.

He rung the door bell and the girl that opened the door she looked kind
o’ surprised when she seen me, and in we went.

“Tell Professor Booth that Doctor Wilkins wants to see him again,”
 says the man a-holt o’ me, not letting loose none. And we says nothing
further till the perfessor comes, which he does, slow and absent-minded.
When he seen me he took off his glasses so’s he could see me better, and
he says:

“What is that you have there, Doctor Wilkins?”

“A guest for you,” says Doctor Wilkins, grinning all over hisself. “I
found him leaving your house. And you being under quarantine, and me
being secretary to the board of health, and the city pest-house being
crowded too full already, I’ll have to ask you to keep him here till
we get Miss Margery onto her feet again,” he says. Or they was words to
that effect, as the lawyers asts you.

“Dear me,” says Perfesser Booth, kind o’ helpless like. And he
comes over closet to me and looks me all over like I was one of them
amphimissourian lizards in a free museum. And then he goes to the foot
of the stairs and sings out in a voice that was so bleached-out and
flat-chested it would of looked jest like him himself if you could of
saw it--“Estelle,” he sings out, “oh, Estelle!”

Estelle, she come down stairs looking like she was the perfessor’s big
brother. I found out later she was his old maid sister. She wasn’t no
spring chicken, Estelle wasn’t, and they was a continuous grin on her
face. I figgered it must of froze there years and years ago. They was
a kid about ten or eleven years old come along down with her, that had
hair down to its shoulders and didn’t look like it knowed whether it was
a girl or a boy. Miss Estelle, she looks me over in a way that makes me
shiver, while the doctor and the perfessor jaws about whose fault it is
the smallpox sign ain’t been hung out. And when she was done listening
she says to the perfessor: “You had better go back to your laboratory.”
 And the perfessor he went along out, and the doctor with him.

“What are you going to do with him, Aunt Estelle?” the kid asts her.

“What would _you_ suggest, William, Dear?” asts his aunt. I ain’t feeling
very comfortable, and I was getting all ready jest to natcherally bolt
out the front door now the doctor was gone. Then I thinks it mightn’t be
no bad place to stay in fur a couple o’ days, even risking the smallpox.
Fur I had riccolected I couldn’t ketch it nohow, having been vaccinated
a few months before in Terry Hutt by compulsive medical advice, me being
fur a while doing some work on the city pavements through a mistake
about me in the police court.

William Dear looks at me like it was the day of judgment and his job was
to keep the fatted calves separate from the goats and prodigals, and he
says:

“If I were you, Aunt Estelle, the first thing would be to get his hair
cut and his face washed and then get him some clothes.”

“William Dear is my friend,” thinks I.

[Illustration: 0171]

She calls James, which was a butler. James, he buttles me into a
bathroom the like o’ which I never seen afore, and then he buttles me
into a suit o’ somebody’s clothes and into a room at the top o’ the
house next to his’n, and then he comes back and buttles a comb and brush
at me. James was the most mournful-looking fat man I ever seen, and he
says that account of me not being respectable I will have my meals alone
in the kitchen after the servants has eat.

The first thing I knowed I been in that house more’n a week. I eat and I
slept and I smoked and I kind of enjoyed not worrying about things fur
a while. The only oncomfortable thing about being the perfessor’s guest
was Miss Estelle. Soon’s she found out I was a agnostic she took charge
o’ my intellectuals and what went into ‘em, and she makes me read things
and asts me about ‘em, and she says she is going fur to reform me. And
whatever brand o’ disgrace them there agnostics really is I ain’t found
out to this day, having come acrost the word accidental.

Biddy Malone, which was the kitchen mechanic, she says the perfessor’s
wife’s been over to her mother’s while this smallpox has been going on,
and they is a nurse in the house looking after Miss Margery, the little
kid that’s sick. And Biddy, she says if she was Mrs. Booth she’d stay
there, too. They’s been some talk, anyhow, about Mrs. Booth and a
musician feller around that there town. But Biddy, she likes Mrs. Booth,
and even if it was true, which it ain’t Biddy says, who could of blamed
her? Fur things ain’t joyous around that house the last year, since Miss
Estelle’s come there to live. The perfessor, he’s so full of scientifics
he don’t know nothing with no sense to it, Biddy says. He’s got more
money’n you can shake a stick at, and he don’t have to do no work, nor
never has, and his scientifics gets worse and worse every year. But
while scientifics is worrying to the nerves of a fambly, and while his
labertory often makes the house smell like a sick drug store has crawled
into it and died there, they wouldn’t of been no serious row on between
the perfessor and his wife, not _all_ the time, if it hadn’t of been fur
Miss Estelle. She has jest natcherally made herself boss of that there
house, Biddy says, and she’s a she-devil. Between all them scientifics
and Miss Estelle things has got where Mrs. Booth can’t stand ‘em much
longer.

I didn’t blame her none fur getting sore on her job, neither. You
can’t expect a woman that’s purty, and knows it, and ain’t no more’n
thirty-two or three, and don’t look it, to be serious intrusted in
mummies and pickled snakes and chemical perfusions, not _all_ the time.
Mebby when Mrs. Booth would ast him if he was going to take her to the
opery that night the perfessor would look up in an absent-minded sort
of way and ast her did she know them Germans had invented a new germ? It
wouldn’t of been so bad if the perfessor had picked out jest one brand
of scientifics and stuck to that reg’lar. Mrs. Booth could of got use to
any _one_ kind. But mebby this week the perfessor would be took hard with
ornithography and he’d go chasing humming-birds all over the front yard,
and the next he’d be putting gastronomy into William’s breakfast feed.

They was always a row on over them kids, which they hadn’t been till
Miss Estelle come. Mrs. Booth, she said they could kill their own
selves, if they wanted to, him and Miss Estelle, but she had more
right than any one else to say what went into William’s and Margery’s
digestive ornaments, and she didn’t want ‘em brung up scientific nohow,
but jest human. But Miss Estelle’s got so she runs that hull house
now, and the perfessor too, but he don’t know it, Biddy says, and her
a-saying every now and then it was too bad Frederick couldn’t of married
a noble woman who would of took a serious intrust in his work. The kids
don’t hardly dare to kiss their ma in front of Miss Estelle no more, on
account of germs and things. And with Miss Estelle taking care of their
religious organs and their intellectuals and the things like that, and
the perfessor filling them up on new invented feeds, I guess they never
was two kids got more education to the square inch, outside and in. It
hadn’t worked none on Miss Margery yet, her being younger, but William
Dear he took it hard and serious, and it made bumps all over his head,
and he was kind o’ pale and spindly. Every time that kid cut his finger
he jest natcherally bled scientifics. One day I says to Miss Estelle,
says I:

“It looks to me like William Dear is kind of peaked.” She looks worried
and she looks mad fur me lipping in, and then she says mebby it is true,
but she don’t see why, because he is being brung up like he orter be in
every way and no expense nor trouble spared.

“Well,” says I, “what a kid about that size wants to do is to get out
and roll around in the dirt some, and yell and holler.”

She sniffs like I wasn’t worth taking no notice of. But it kind o’
soaked in, too. She and the perfessor must of talked it over. Fur the
next day I seen her spreading a oilcloth on the hall floor. And then
James comes a buttling in with a lot of sand what the perfessor has
baked and made all scientific down in his labertory. James, he pours all
that nice, clean dirt onto the oilcloth and then Miss Estelle sends fur
William Dear.

“William Dear,” she says, “we have decided, your papa and I, that what
you need is more romping around and playing along with your studies. You
ought to get closer to the soil and to nature, as is more healthy for
a youth of your age. So for an hour each day, between your studies, you
will romp and play in this sand. You may begin to frolic now, William
Dear, and then James will sweep up the dirt again for to-morrow’s
frolic.”

But William didn’t frolic none. He jest looked at that dirt in a sad
kind o’ way, and he says very serious but very decided:

“Aunt Estelle, I shall _not_ frolic.” And they had to let it go at that,
fur he never would frolic none, neither. And all that nice clean dirt
was throwed out in the back yard along with the unscientific dirt.



CHAPTER XI


One night when I’ve been there more’n a week, and am getting kind o’
tired staying in one place so long, I don’t want to go to bed after I
eats, and I gets a-holt of some of the perfessor’s cigars and goes
into the lib’ary to see if he’s got anything fit to read. Setting there
thinking of the awful remarkable people they is in this world I must of
went to sleep. Purty soon, in my sleep, I hearn two voices. Then I waked
up sudden, and still hearn ‘em, low and quicklike, in the room that
opens right off of the lib’ary with a couple of them sliding doors like
is onto a box car. One voice was a woman’s voice, and it wasn’t Miss
Estelle’s.

“But I _must_ see them before we go, Henry,” she says.

And the other was a man’s voice and it wasn’t no one around our house.

“But, my God,” he says, “suppose you get it yourself, Jane!”

I set up straight then, fur Jane was the perfessor’s wife’s first name.

“You mean suppose _you_ get it,” she says. I like to of seen the look she
must of give him to fit in with the way she says that _you_. He didn’t say
nothing, the man didn’t; and then her voice softens down some, and
she says, low and slow: “Henry, wouldn’t you love me if I _did_ get it?
Suppose it marked and pitted me all up?”

“Oh, of course,” he says, “of course I would. Nothing can change the way
I feel. _You_ know that.” He said it quick enough, all right, jest the way
they does in a show, but it sounded _too much_ like it does on the stage
to of suited me if _I_‘d been her. I seen folks overdo them little talks
before this.

I listens some more, and then I sees how it is. This is that musician
feller Biddy Malone’s been talking about. Jane’s going to run off with
him all right, but she’s got to kiss the kids first. Women is like that.
They may hate the kids’ pa all right, but they’s dad-burned few of ‘em
don’t like the kids. I thinks to myself: “It must be late. I bet they
was already started, or ready to start, and she made him bring her here
first so’s she could sneak in and see the kids. She jest simply couldn’t
get by. But she’s taking a fool risk, too. Fur how’s she going to see
Margery with that nurse coming and going and hanging around all night?
And even if she tries jest to see William Dear it’s a ten to one shot
he’ll wake up and she’ll be ketched at it.”

And then I thinks, suppose she _is_ ketched at it? What of it? Ain’t a
woman got a right to come into her own house with her own door key, even
if they is a quarantine onto it, and see her kids? And if she is ketched
seeing them, how would any one know she was going to run off? And ain’t
she got a right to have a friend of hern and her husband’s bring her
over from her mother’s house, even if it is a little late?

Then I seen she wasn’t taking no great risks neither, and I thinks mebby
I better go and tell that perfessor what is going on, fur he has treated
me purty white. And then I thinks: “I’ll be gosh-derned if I meddle.
So fur as I can see that there perfessor ain’t getting fur from what’s
coming to him, nohow. And as fur _her_, you got to let some people find
out what they want fur theirselves. Anyhow, where do _I_ come in at?”

But I want to get a look at her and Henry, anyhow. So I eases off my
shoes, careful-like, and I eases acrost the floor to them sliding doors,
and I puts my eye down to the little crack. The talk is going backward
and forward between them two, him wanting her to come away quick, and
her undecided whether to risk seeing the kids. And all the time she’s
kind o’ hoping mebby she will be ketched if she tries to see the kids,
and she’s begging off fur more time ginerally.

Well, sir, I didn’t blame that musician feller none when I seen her. She
was a peach.

And I couldn’t blame her so much, neither, when I thought of Miss
Estelle and all them scientifics of the perfessor’s strung out fur years
and years world without end.

Yet, when I seen the man, I sort o’ wished she wouldn’t. I seen right
off that Henry wouldn’t do. It takes a man with a lot of gumption to
keep a woman feeling good and not sorry fur doing it when he’s married
to her. But it takes a man with twicet as much to make her feel right
when they ain’t married. This feller wears one of them little, brown,
pointed beards fur to hide where his chin ain’t. And his eyes is too
much like a woman’s. Which is the kind that gets the biggest piece of
pie at the lunch counter and fergits to thank the girl as cuts it big.
She was setting in front of a table, twisting her fingers together, and
he was walking up and down. I seen he was mad and trying not to show it,
and I seen he was scared of the smallpox and trying not to show that,
too. And jest about that time something happened that kind o’ jolted me.

They was one of them big chairs in the room where they was that has got
a high back and spins around on itself. It was right acrost from me, on
the other side of the room, and it was facing the front window, which
was a bow window. And that there chair begins to turn, slow and easy.
First I thought she wasn’t turning. Then I seen she was. But Jane and
Henry didn’t. They was all took up with each other in the middle of the
room, with their backs to it.

Henry is a-begging of Jane, and she turns a little more, that chair
does. Will she squeak, I wonders?

“Don’t you be a fool, Jane,” says the Henry feller.

Around she comes three hull inches, that there chair, and nary a squeak.

“A fool?” asts Jane, and laughs. “And I’m not a fool to think of going
with you at all, then?”

That chair, she moved six inches more and I seen the calf of a leg and
part of a crumpled-up coat tail.

“But I _am_ going with you, Henry,” says Jane. And she gets up jest like
she is going to put her arms around him.

But Jane don’t. Fur that chair swings clear around and there sets the
perfessor. He’s all hunched up and caved in and he’s rubbing his eyes
like he’s jest woke up recent, and he’s got a grin onto his face that
makes him look like his sister Estelle looks all the time.

“Excuse me,” says the perfessor.

They both swings around and faces him. I can hear my heart bumping. Jane
never says a word. The man with the brown beard never says a word. But
if they felt like me they both felt like laying right down there and
having a fit. They looks at him and he jest sets there and grins at
them.

But after a while Jane, she says:

“Well, now you _know!_ What are you going to do about it?”

Henry, he starts to say something too. But--

“Don’t start anything,” says the perfessor to him. “_You_ aren’t going to
do anything.” Or they was words to that effect.

“Professor Booth,” he says, seeing he has got to say something or else
Jane will think the worse of him, “I am--”

“Keep still,” says the perfessor, real quiet. “I’ll tend to you in a
minute or two. _You_ don’t count for much. This thing is mostly between me
and my wife.”

When he talks so decided I thinks mebby that perfessor has got something
into him besides science after all. Jane, she looks kind o’ surprised
herself. But she says nothing, except:

“What are you going to do, Frederick?” And she laughs one of them mean
kind of laughs, and looks at Henry like she wanted him to spunk up a
little more, and says: “What _can_ you do, Frederick?”

Frederick, he says, not excited a bit:

“There’s quite a number of things I _could_ do that would look bad when
they got into the newspapers. But it’s none of them, unless one of you
forces me to it.” Then he says:

“You _did_ want to see the children, Jane?”

She nodded.

“Jane,” he says, “can’t you see I’m the better man?”

The perfessor, he was woke up after all them years of scientifics, and
he didn’t want to see her go. “Look at him,” he says, pointing to the
feller with the brown beard, “he’s scared stiff right now.”

Which I would of been scared myself if I’d a-been ketched that-a-way
like Henry was, and the perfessor’s voice sounding like you was chopping
ice every time he spoke. I seen the perfessor didn’t want to have no
blood on the carpet without he had to have it, but I seen he was making
up his mind about something, too. Jane, she says:

“_You_ a better man? _You_? You think you’ve been a model husband just
because you’ve never beaten me, don’t you?”

“No,” says the perfessor, “I’ve been a blamed fool all right. I’ve been
a worse fool, maybe, than if I _had_ beaten you.” Then he turns to Henry
and he says:

“Duels are out of fashion, aren’t they? And a plain killing looks bad in
the papers, doesn’t it? Well, you just wait for me.” With which he gets
up and trots out, and I hearn him running down stairs to his labertory.

Henry, he’d ruther go now. He don’t want to wait. But with Jane
a-looking at him he’s shamed not to wait. It’s his place to make some
kind of a strong action now to show Jane he is a great man. But he don’t
do it. And Jane is too much of a thoroughbred to show him she expects
it. And me, I’m getting the fidgets and wondering to myself, “What is
that there perfessor up to now? Whatever it is, it ain’t like no one
else. He is looney, that perfessor is. And she is kind o’ looney, too.
I wonder if they is any one that ain’t looney sometimes?” I been
around the country a good ‘eal, too, and seen and hearn of some awful
remarkable things, and I never seen no one that wasn’t more or less
looney when the _search us the femm_ comes into the case. Which is a Dago
word I got out’n a newspaper and it means: “Who was the dead gent’s lady
friend?” And we all set and sweat and got the fidgets waiting fur that
perfessor to come back.

Which he done with that Sister Estelle grin onto his face and a pill box
in his hand. They was two pills in the box. He says, placid and chilly:

“Yes, sir, duels are out of fashion. This is the age of science. All the
same, the one that gets her has got to fight for her. If she isn’t worth
fighting for, she isn’t worth having. Here are two pills. I made ‘em
myself. One has enough poison in it to kill a regiment when it gets to
working well--which it does fifteen minutes after it is taken. The other
one has got nothing harmful in it. If you get the poison one, I keep
her. If I get it, you can have her. Only I hope you will wait long
enough after I’m dead so there won’t be any scandal around town.”

Henry, he never said a word. He opened his mouth, but nothing come of
it. When he done that I thought I hearn his tongue scrape agin his cheek
on the inside like a piece of sand-paper. He was scared, Henry was.

“But _you_ know which is which,” Jane sings out. “The thing’s not fair!”

“That is the reason my dear Jane is going to shuffle these pills around
each other herself,” says the perfessor, “and then pick out one for him
and one for me. _You_ don’t know which is which, Jane. And as he is the
favourite, he is going to get the first chance. If he gets the one I
want him to get, he will have just fifteen minutes to live after taking
it. In that fifteen minutes he will please to walk so far from my house
that he won’t die near it and make a scandal. I won’t have a scandal
without I have to. Everything is going to be nice and quiet and
respectable. The effect of the poison is similar to heart failure. No
one can tell the difference on the corpse. There’s going to be no blood
anywhere. I will be found dead in my house in the morning with heart
failure, or else he will be picked up dead in the street, far enough
away so as to make no talk.” Or they was words to that effect.

He is rubbing it in considerable, I thinks, that perfessor is. I wonder
if I better jump in and stop the hull thing. Then I thinks: “No, it’s
between them three.” Besides, I want to see which one is going to get
that there loaded pill. I always been intrusted in games of chancet of
all kinds, and when I seen the perfessor was such a sport, I’m sorry I
been misjudging him all this time.

Jane, she looks at the box, and she breathes hard and quick.

“I won’t touch ‘em,” she says. “I refuse to be a party to any murder of
that kind.”

“Huh? You do?” says the perfessor. “But the time when you might have
refused has gone by. You have made yourself a party to it already.
You’re really the _main_ party to it.

“But do as you like,” he goes on. “I’m giving him more chance than I
ought to with those pills. I might shoot him, and I would, and then face
the music, if it wasn’t for mixing the children up in the scandal, Jane.
If you want to see him get a fair chance, Jane, you’ve got to hand out
these pills, one to him and then one to me. _You_ must kill one or the
other of us, or else _I’ll kill him_ the other way. And _you_ had better
pick one out for him, because _I_ know which is which. Or else let him
pick one out for himself,” he says.

Henry, he wasn’t saying nothing. I thought he had fainted. But he
hadn’t. I seen him licking his lips. I bet Henry’s mouth was all dry
inside.

Jane, she took the box and she went round in front of Henry and she
looked at him hard. She looked at him like she was thinking: “Fur God’s
sake, spunk up some, and take one if it _does_ kill you!” Then she says
out loud: “Henry, if you die I will die, too!”

And Henry, he took one. His hand shook, but he took it out’n the box. If
she had of looked like that at me mebby I would of took one myself. Fur
Jane, she was a peach, she was. But I don’t know whether I would of or
not. When she makes that brag about dying, I looked at the perfessor.
What she said never fazed him. And I thinks agin: “Mebby I better jump
in now and stop this thing.” And then I thinks agin: “No, it is between
them three and Providence.” Besides, I’m anxious to see who is going
to get that pill with the science in it. I gets to feeling jest like
Providence hisself was in that there room picking out them pills with
his own hands. And I was anxious to see what Providence’s ideas of right
and wrong was like. So fur as I could see they was all three in the
wrong, but if I had of been in there running them pills in Providence’s
place I would of let them all off kind o’ easy.

Henry, he ain’t eat his pill yet. He is jest looking at it and shaking.
The perfessor pulls out his watch and lays it on the table.

“It is a quarter past eleven,” he says. “Mr. Murray, are you going to
make me shoot you, after all? I didn’t want a scandal,” he says. “It’s
for you to say whether you want to eat that pill and get your even
chance, or whether you want to get shot. The shooting method is sure,
but it causes talk. These pills won’t _which_?”

And he pulls a revolver. Which I suppose he had got that too when he
went down after them pills.

Henry, he looks at the gun.

Then he looks at the pill.

Then he swallers the pill.

The perfessor puts his gun back into his pocket, and then he puts his
pill into his mouth. He don’t swaller it. He looks at the watch, and he
looks at Henry.

“Sixteen minutes past eleven,” he says. “_At exactly twenty-nine minutes
to twelve Mr. Murray will be dead_. I got the harmless one. I can tell by
the taste.”

And he put the pieces out into his hand, to show that he has chewed
his’n up, not being willing to wait fifteen minutes fur a verdict from
his digestive ornaments. Then he put them pieces back into his mouth and
chewed ‘em up and swallered ‘em down like he was eating cough drops.

Henry has got sweat breaking out all over his face, and he tries to make
fur the door, but he falls down onto a sofa.

“This is murder,” he says, weak-like. And he tries to get up again, but
this time he falls to the floor in a dead faint.

“It’s a dern short fifteen minutes,” I thinks to myself. “That perfessor
must of put more science into Henry’s pill than he thought he did fur it
to of knocked him out this quick. It ain’t skeercly three minutes.”

When Henry falls the woman staggers and tries to throw herself on top
of him. The corners of her mouth was all drawed down, and her eyes was
turned up. But she don’t yell none. She can’t. She tries, but she jest
gurgles in her throat. The perfessor won’t let her fall acrost Henry.
He ketches her. “Sit up, Jane,” he says, with that Estelle look onto his
face, “and let us have a talk.”

She looks at him with no more sense in her face than a piece of putty
has got. But she can’t look away from him.

And I’m kind o’ paralyzed, too. If that feller laying on the floor
had only jest kicked oncet, or grunted, or done something, I could of
loosened up and yelled, and I would of. I jest _needed_ to fetch a yell.
But Henry ain’t more’n dropped down there till I’m feeling jest like
he’d _always_ been there, and I’d _always_ been staring into that room, and
the last word any one spoke was said hundreds and hundreds of years ago.

“You’re a murderer,” says Jane in a whisper, looking at the perfessor in
that stare-eyed way. “You’re a _murderer_,” she says, saying it like she
was trying to make herself feel sure he really was one.

“Murder!” says the perfessor. “Did you think I was going to run any
chances for a pup like him? He’s scared, that’s all. He’s just fainted
through fright. He’s a coward. Those pills were both just bread and
sugar. He’ll be all right in a minute or two. I’ve just been showing
you that the fellow hasn’t got nerve enough nor brains enough for a fine
woman like you, Jane,” he says.

Then Jane begins to sob and laugh, both to oncet, kind o’ wild like, her
voice clucking like a hen does, and she says:

“It’s worse then, it’s worse! It’s worse for me than if it were a
murder! Some farces can be more tragic than any tragedy ever was,” she
says. Or they was words to that effect.

And if Henry had of been really dead she couldn’t of took it no harder
than she begun to take it now when she saw he was alive, but jest wasn’t
no good. But I seen she was taking on fur herself now more’n fur Henry.
Doctor Kirby always use to say women is made unlike most other animals
in many ways. When they is foolish about a man they can stand to have
that man killed a good ‘eal better than to have him showed up ridiculous
right in front of them. They will still be crazy about the man that is
dead, even if he was crooked. But they don’t never forgive the fellow
that lets himself be made a fool and lets them look foolish, too. And
when the perfessor kicks Henry in the ribs, and Henry comes to and
sneaks out, Jane, she never even turns her head and looks at him.

“Jane,” says the perfessor, when she quiets down some, “you have a lot
o’ things to forgive me. But do you suppose I have learned enough so
that we can make a go of it if we start all over again?”

But Jane she never said nothing.

“Jane,” he says, “Estelle is going back to New England, as soon as
Margery gets well, and she will stay there for good.”

Jane, she begins to take a little intrust then.

“Did Estelle tell you so?” she asts.

“No,” says the perfessor. “Estelle doesn’t know it yet. I’m going to
break the news to her in the morning.”

But Jane still hates him. She’s making herself hate him hard. She
wouldn’t of been a human woman if she had let herself be coaxed up all
to oncet. Purty soon she says: “I’m tired.” And she went out looking
like the perfessor was a perfect stranger. She was a peace, Jane was.

After she left, the perfessor set there quite a spell and smoked. And he
was looking tired out, too. They wasn’t no mistake about me. I was jest
dead all through my legs.



CHAPTER XII


I was down in the perfessor’s labertory one day, and that was a queer
place. They was every kind of scientifics that has ever been discovered
in it. Some was pickled in bottles and some was stuffed and some was
pinned to the walls with their wings spread out. If you took hold of
anything, it was likely to be a skull and give you the shivers or some
electric contraption and shock you; and if you tipped over a jar and
it broke, enough germs might get loose to slaughter a hull town. I was
helping the perfessor to unpack a lot of stuff some friends had sent
him, and I noticed a bottle that had onto it, blowed in the glass:

DANIEL, DUNNE AND COMPANY

“That’s funny,” says I, out loud.

“What is?” asts the perfessor.

I showed him the bottle and told him how I was named after the company
that made ‘em. He says to look around me. They is all kinds of glassware
in that room--bottles and jars and queer-shaped things with crooked tails
and noses--and nigh every piece of glass the perfessor owns is made by
that company.

“Why,” says the perfessor, “their factory is in this very town.”

And nothing would do fur me but I must go and see that factory. I
couldn’t till the quarantine was pried loose from our house. But when it
was, I went down town and hunted up the place and looked her over.

It was a big factory, and I was kind of proud of that. I was glad she
wasn’t no measly, little, old-fashioned, run-down concern. Of course,
I wasn’t really no relation to it and it wasn’t none to me. But I
was named fur it, too, and it come about as near to being a fambly as
anything I had ever had or was likely to find. So I was proud it seemed
to be doing so well.

I thinks as I looks at her of the thousands and thousands of bottles
that has been coming out of there fur years and years, and will be
fur years and years to come. And one bottle not so much different from
another one. And all that was really knowed about me was jest the name
on one out of all them millions and millions of bottles. It made me feel
kind of queer, when I thought of that, as if I didn’t have no separate
place in the world any more than one of them millions of bottles. If any
one will shut his eyes and say his own name over and over agin fur quite
a spell, he will get kind of wonderized and mesmerized a-doing it--he
will begin to wonder who the dickens he is, anyhow, and what he is, and
what the difference between him and the next feller is. He will wonder
why he happens to be himself and the next feller _himself_. He wonders
where himself leaves off and the rest of the world begins. I been that
way myself--all wonderized, so that I felt jest like I was a melting
piece of the hull creation, and it was all shifting and drifting and
changing and flowing, and not solid anywhere, and I could hardly keep
myself from flowing into it. It makes a person feel awful queer, like
seeing a ghost would. It makes him feel like _he_ wasn’t no solider than
a ghost himself. Well, if you ever done that and got that feeling, you
_know_ what I mean. All of a sudden, when I am trying to take in all
them millions and millions of bottles, it rushed onto me, that feeling,
strong. Thinking of them bottles had somehow brung it on. The bigness
of the hull creation, and the smallness of me, and the gait at which
everything was racing and rushing ahead, made me want to grab hold of
something solid and hang on.

I reached out my hand, and it hit something solid all right. It was
a feller who was wheeling out a hand truck loaded with boxes from the
shipping department. I had been standing by the shipping department
door, and I reached right agin him.

He wants to know if I am drunk or a blanked fool. So after some talk
of that kind I borrows a chew of tobacco of him and we gets right well
acquainted.

I helped him finish loading his wagon and rode over to the freight depot
with him and helped him unload her. Lifting one of them boxes down from
the wagon I got such a shock I like to of dropped her.

[Illustration: 0197]

Fur she was marked so many dozen, glass, handle with care, and she was
addressed to Dr. Hartley L. Kirby, Atlanta, Ga.

I managed to get that box onto the platform without busting her, and
then I sets down on top of her awful weak.

“What’s the matter?” asts the feller I was with.

“Nothing,” says I.

“You look sick,” he says. And I _was_ feeling that-a-way.

“Mebby I do,” says I, “and it’s enough to shake a feller up to find a
dead man come to life sudden like this.”

“Great snakes, no!” says he, looking all around, “where?”

But I didn’t stop to chew the rag none. I left him right there, with his
mouth wide open, staring after me like I was crazy. Half a block away I
looked back and I seen him double over and slap his knee and laugh loud,
like he had hearn a big joke, but what he was laughing at I never knew.

I was tickled. Tickled? Jest so tickled I was plumb foolish with it. The
doctor was alive after all--I kept saying it over and over to myself--he
hadn’t drownded nor blowed away. And I was going to hunt him up.

I had a little money. The perfessor had paid it to me. He had give me a
job helping take care of his hosses and things like that, and wanted me
to stay, and I had been thinking mebby I would fur a while. But not now!

I calkelated I could grab a ride that very night that would put me into
Evansville the next morning. I figgered if I ketched a through freight
from there on the next night I might get where he was almost as quick as
them bottles did.

I didn’t think it was no use writing out my resignation fur the
perfessor. But I got quite a bit of grub from Biddy Malone to make a
start on, fur I didn’t figger on spending no more money than I had to
on grub. She asts me a lot of questions, and I had to lie to her a
good deal, but I got the grub. And at ten that night I was in an empty
bumping along south, along with a cross-eyed feller named Looney Hogan
who happened to be travelling the same way.

Riding on trains without paying fare ain’t always the easy thing it
sounds. It is like a trade that has got to be learned. They is different
ways of doing it. I have done every way frequent, except one. That I
give up after trying her two, three times. That is riding the rods
down underneath the cars, with a piece of board put acrost ‘em to lay
yourself on.

I never want to go _anywheres_ agin bad enough to ride the rods.

Because sometimes you arrive where you are going to partly smeared over
the trucks and in no condition fur to be made welcome to our city, as
Doctor Kirby would say. Sometimes you don’t arrive. Every oncet in a
while you read a little piece in a newspaper about a man being found
alongside the tracks, considerable cut up, or laying right acrost them,
mebby. He is held in the morgue a while and no one knows who he is, and
none of the train crew knows they has run over a man, and the engineer
says they wasn’t none on the track. More’n likely that feller has been
riding the rods, along about the middle of the train. Mebby he let
himself go to sleep and jest rolled off. Mebby his piece of board
slipped and he fell when the train jolted. Or mebby he jest natcherally
made up his mind he rather let loose and get squashed then get any more
cinders into his eyes. Riding the blind baggage or the bumpers gives me
all the excitement I wants, or all the gambling chancet either; others
can have the rods fur all of me. And they _is_ some people ackshally says
they likes ‘em best.

A good place, if it is winter time, is the feed rack over a cattle car,
fur the heat and steam from all them steers in there will keep you warm.
But don’t crawl in no lumber car that is only loaded about half full,
and short lengths and bundles of laths and shingles in her; fur they
is likely to get to shifting and bumping. Baled hay is purty good
sometimes. Myself, not being like these bums that is too proud to
work, I have often helped the fireman shovel coal and paid fur my ride
that-a-way. But an empty, fur gineral purposes, will do about as well as
anything.

This feller Looney Hogan that was with me was a kind of a harmless
critter, and he didn’t know jest where he was going, nor why. He was
mostly scared of things, and if you spoke to him quick he shivered first
and then grinned idiotic so you wouldn’t kick him, and when he talked
he had a silly little giggle. He had been made that-a-way in a reform
school where they took him young and tried to work the cussedness out’n
him by batting him around. They worked it out, and purty nigh everything
else along with it, I guess. Looney had had a pardner whose name was
Slim, he said; but a couple of years before Slim had fell overboard
off’n a barge up to Duluth and never come up agin. Looney knowed Slim
was drownded all right, but he was always travelling around looking
at tanks and freight depots and switch shanties, fur Slim’s mark to be
fresh cut with a knife somewheres, so he would know where to foller and
ketch up with him agin. He knowed he would never find Slim’s mark, he
said, but he kept a-looking, and he guessed that was the way he got the
name of Looney.

Looney left me at Evansville. He said he was going east from there, he
guessed. And I went along south. But I was hindered considerable, being
put off of trains three or four times, and having to grab these here
slow local freights between towns all the way down through Kentuckey.
Anywheres south of the Ohio River and east of the Mississippi River
trainmen is grouchier to them they thinks is bums than north of it,
anyhow. And in some parts of it, if a real bum gets pinched, heaven help
‘im, fur nothing else won’t.

One night, between twelve and one o’clock, I was put off of a freight
train fur the second time in a place in the northern part of Tennessee,
right near the Kentuckey line. I set down in a lumber yard near the
railroad track, and when she started up agin I grabbed onto the iron
ladder and swung myself aboard. But the brakeman was watching fur me,
and clumb down the ladder and stamped on my fingers. So I dropped off,
with one finger considerable mashed, and set down in that lumber yard
wondering what next.

It was a dark night, and so fur as I could see they wasn’t much moving
in that town. Only a few places was lit up. One was way acrost the town
square from me, and it was the telephone exchange, with a man operator
reading a book in there. The other was the telegraph room in the depot
about a hundred yards from me, and they was only two fellers in it,
both smoking. The main business part of the town was built up around the
square, like lots of old-fashioned towns is, and they was jest enough
brightness from four, five electric lights to show the shape of the
square and be reflected from the windows of the closed-up stores.

I knowed they was likely a watchman somewheres about, too. I guessed
I wouldn’t wander around none and run no chances of getting took up by
him. So I was getting ready to lay down on top of a level pile of boards
and go to sleep when I hearn a curious kind of noise a way off, like it
must be at the edge of town.

It sounded like quite a bunch of cattle might shuffling along a dusty
road. The night was so quiet you could hear things plain from a long
ways off. It growed a little louder and a little nearer. And then it
struck a plank bridge somewheres, and come acrost it with a clatter.
Then I knowed it wasn’t cattle. Cows and steers don’t make that
cantering kind of noise as a rule; they trot. It was hosses crossing
that bridge. And they was quite a lot of ‘em.

As they struck the dirt road agin, I hearn a shot. And then another and
another. Then a dozen all to oncet, and away off through the night a
woman screamed.

I seen the man in the telephone place fling down his book and grab a
pistol from I don’t know where. He stepped out into the street and fired
three shots into the air as fast as he could pull the trigger. And as he
done so they was a light flashed out in a building way down the railroad
track, and shots come answering from there. Men’s voices began to yell
out; they was the noise of people running along plank sidewalks, and
windows opening in the dark. Then with a rush the galloping noise come
nearer, come closet; raced by the place where I was hiding, and nigh
a hundred men with guns swept right into the middle of that square and
pulled their hosses up.



CHAPTER XIII


I seen the feller from the telephone exchange run down the street a
little ways as the first rush hit the square, and fire his pistol twice.
Then he turned and made fur an alleyway, but as he turned they let him
have it. He throwed up his arms and made one long stagger, right acrost
the bar of light that streamed out of the windows, and he fell into the
shadder, out of sight, jest like a scorched moth drops dead into the
darkness from a torch.

Out of the middle of that bunch of riders come a big voice, yelling
numbers, instead of men’s names. Then different crowds lit out in all
directions--some on foot, while others held their hosses--fur they
seemed to have a plan laid ahead.

And then things began to happen. They happened so quick and with such a
whirl it was all unreal to me--shots and shouts, and windows breaking as
they blazed away at the store fronts all around the square--and orders
and cuss-words ringing out between the noise of shooting--and those
electric lights shining on them as they tossed and trampled, and
showing up masked faces here and there--and pounding hoofs, and hosses
scream--like humans with excitement--and spurts of flame squirted sudden
out of the ring of darkness round about the open place--and a bull-dog
shut up in a store somewheres howling himself hoarse--and white puffs of
powder smoke like ghosts that went a-drifting by the lights--it was all
unreal to me, as if I had a fever and was dreaming it. That square was
like a great big stage in front of me, and I laid in the darkness on my
lumber pile and watched things like a show--not much scared because it
_was_ so derned unreal.

From way down along the railroad track they come a sort of blunted roar,
like blasting big stumps out--and then another and another. Purty soon,
down that way, a slim flame licked up the side of a big building there,
and crooked its tongue over the top. Then a second big building right
beside it ketched afire, and they both showed up in their own light, big
and angry and handsome, and the light showed up the men in front of ‘em,
too--guarding ‘em, I guess, fur fear the town would get its nerve and
make a fight to put ‘em out. They begun to light the whole town up as
light as day, and paint a red patch onto the sky, that must of been
noticed fur miles around. It was a mighty purty sight to see ‘em burn.
The smoke was rolling high, too, and the sparks flying and other things
in danger of ketching, and after while a lick of smoke come drifting up
my way. I smelt her. It was tobacco burning in them warehouses.

But that town had some fight in her, in spite of being took unexpected
that-a-way. It wasn’t no coward town. The light from the burning
buildings made all the shadders around about seem all the darker. And
every once in a while, after the surprise of the first rush, they would
come thin little streaks of fire out of the darkness somewheres, and the
sound of shots. And then a gang of riders would gallop in that direction
shooting up all creation. But by the time the warehouses was all lit up
so that you could see they was no hope of putting them out the shooting
from the darkness had jest about stopped.

It looked like them big tobacco warehouses was the main object of the
raid. Fur when they was burning past all chancet of saving, with walls
and floors a-tumbling and crashing down and sending up great gouts of
fresh flame as they fell, the leader sings out an order, and all that is
not on their hosses jumps on, and they rides away from the blaze. They
come across the square--not galloping now, but taking it easy, laughing
and talking and cussing and joking each other--and passed right by my
lumber pile agin and down the street they had come. You bet I laid low
on them boards while they was going by, and flattened myself out till I
felt like a shingle.

As I hearn their hoof-sounds getting farther off, I lifts up my head
agin. But they wasn’t all gone, either. Three that must of been up to
some pertic’ler deviltry of their own come galloping acrost the square
to ketch up with the main bunch. Two was quite a bit ahead of the third
one, and he yelled to them to wait. But they only laughed and rode
harder.

And then fur some fool reason that last feller pulled up his hoss and
stopped. He stopped in the road right in front of me, and wheeled his
hoss acrost the road and stood up in his stirrups and took a long look
at that blaze. You’d ‘a’ said he had done it all himself and was mighty
proud of it, the way he raised his head and looked back at that town. He
was so near that I hearn him draw in a slow, deep breath. He stood still
fur most a minute like that, black agin the red sky, and then he turned
his hoss’s head and jabbed him with his stirrup edge.

Jest as the hoss started they come a shot from somewheres behind me.
I s’pose they was some one hid in the lumber piles, where the street
crossed the railway, besides myself. The hoss jumped forward at the
shot, and the feller swayed sideways and dropped his gun and lost his
stirrups and come down heavy on the ground. His hoss galloped off. I
heard the noise of some one running off through the dark, and stumbling
agin the lumber. It was the feller who had fired the shot running away.
I suppose he thought the rest of them riders would come back, when they
heard that shot, and hunt him down.

I thought they might myself. But I laid there, and jest waited. If they
come, I didn’t want to be found running. But they didn’t come. The two
last ones had caught up with the main gang, I guess, fur purty soon
I hearn them all crossing that plank bridge agin, and knowed they was
gone.

At first I guessed the feller on the ground must be dead. But he wasn’t,
fur purty soon I hearn him groan. He had mebby been stunned by his fall,
and was coming to enough to feel his pain.

I didn’t feel like he orter be left there. So I clumb down and went over
to him. He was lying on one side all kind of huddled up. There had
been a mask on his face, like the rest of them, with some hair onto the
bottom of it to look like a beard. But now it had slipped down till it
hung loose around his neck by the string. They was enough light to see
he wasn’t nothing but a young feller. He raised himself slow as I come
near him, leaning on one arm and trying to set up. The other arm hung
loose and helpless. Half setting up that-away he made a feel at his belt
with his good hand, as I come near. But that good arm was his prop, and
when he took it off the ground he fell back. His hand come away empty
from his belt.

The big six-shooter he had been feeling fur wasn’t in its holster,
anyhow. It had fell out when he tumbled. I picked it up in the road
jest a few feet from his shot-gun, and stood there with it in my hand,
looking down at him.

“Well,” he says, in a drawly kind of voice, slow and feeble, but looking
at me steady and trying to raise himself agin, “yo’ can finish yo’
little job now--yo’ shot me from the darkness, and now yo’ done got my
pistol. I reckon yo’ better shoot _agin_.”

“I don’t want to rub it in none,” I says, “with you down and out, but
from what I seen around this town to-night I guess you and your own gang
got no _great_ objections to shooting from the dark yourselves.”

“Why don’t yo’ shoot then?” he says. “It most suttinly is _yo_’ turn now.”
 And he never batted an eye.

“Bo,” I says, “you got nerve. I _like_ you, Bo. I didn’t shoot you, and I
ain’t going to. The feller that did has went. I’m going to get you out
of this. Where you hurt?”

“Hip,” he says, “but that ain’t much. The thing that bothers me is this
arm. It’s done busted. I fell on it.”

I drug him out of the road and back of the lumber pile I had been laying
on, and hurt him considerable a-doing it.

“Now,” I says, “what can I do fur you?”

“I reckon yo’ better leave me,” he says, “without yo’ want to get
yo’self mixed up in all this.”

“If I do,” I says, “you may bleed to death here: or anyway you would get
found in the morning and be run in.”

“Yo’ mighty good to me,” says he, “considering yo’ are no kin to this
here part of the country at all. I reckon by yo’ talk yo’ are one of
them damn Yankees, ain’t yo’?”

In Illinoise a Yankee is some one from the East, but down South he is
anybody from north of the Ohio, and though that there war was fought
forty years ago some of them fellers down there don’t know damn and
Yankee is two words yet. But shucks!--they don’t mean no harm by it! So
I tells him I am a damn Yankee and asts him agin if I can do anything
fur him.

“Yes,” he says, “yo’ can tell a friend of mine Bud Davis has happened
to an accident, and get him over here quick with his wagon to tote me
home.”

I was to go down the railroad track past them burning warehouses till
I come to the third street, and then turn to my left. “The third house
from the track has got an iron picket fence in front of it,” says Bud,
“and it’s the only house in that part of town which has. Beauregard
Peoples lives there. He is kin to me.”

“Yes,” I says, “and Beauregard is jest as likely as not going to take a
shot out of the front window at me, fur luck, afore I can tell him what
I want. It seems to be a kind of habit in these here parts to-night--I’m
getting homesick fur Illinoise. But I’ll take a chancet.”

“He won’t shoot,” says Bud, “if yo’ go about it right. Beauregard ain’t
going to be asleep with all this going on in town to-night. Yo’ rattle
on the iron gate and he’ll holler to know what yo’ all want.”

“If he don’t shoot first,” I says.

“When he hollers, yo’ cry back at him yo’ have found his _Old Dead Hoss_
in the road. It won’t hurt to holler that loud, and that will make him
let you within talking distance.”

“His old _dead hoss_?”

“Yo’ don’t need to know what that is. _He_ will.” And then Bud told
me enough of the signs and words to say, and things to do, to keep
Beauregard from shooting--he said he reckoned he had trusted me so much
he might as well go the hull hog. Beauregard, he says, belongs to them
riders too; they have friends in all the towns that watches the lay of
the land fur them, he says.

I made a long half-circle around them burning buildings, keeping in the
dark, fur people was coming out in bunches, now that it was all over
with, watching them fires burning, and talking excited, and saying the
riders should be follered--only not follering.

I found the house Bud meant, and they was a light in the second-story
window. I rattled on the gate. A dog barked somewheres near, but I hearn
his chain jangle and knowed he was fast, and I rattled on the gate agin.

The light moved away from the window. Then another front window opened
quiet, and a voice says:

“Doctor, is that yo’ back agin?”

“No,” I says, “I ain’t a doctor.”

“Stay where you are, then. _I got you covered_.”

“I am staying,” I says, “don’t shoot.”

“Who are yo’?”

“A feller,” I says, kind of sensing his gun through the darkness as I
spoke, “who has found your _old dead hoss_ in the road.”

He didn’t answer fur several minutes. Then he says, using the words _dead
hoss_ as Bud had said he would.

“A _dead hoss_ is fitten fo’ nothing but to skin.”

“Well,” I says, using the words fur the third time, as instructed, “it
is a _dead hoss_ all right.”

I hearn the window shut and purty soon the front door opened.

“Come up here,” he says. I come.

“Who rode that hoss yo’ been talking about?” he asts.

“One of the _Silent Brigade_,” I tells him, as Bud had told me to say. I
give him the grip Bud had showed me with his good hand.

“Come on in,” he says.

He shut the door behind us and lighted a lamp agin. And we looked each
other over. He was a scrawny little feller, with little gray eyes set
near together, and some sandy-complected whiskers on his chin. I told
him about Bud, and what his fix was.

“Damn it--oh, damn it all,” he says, rubbing the bridge of his nose, “I
don’t see how on _airth_ I kin do it. My wife’s jest had a baby. Do yo’
hear that?”

And I did hear a sound like kittens mewing, somewheres up stairs.
Beauregard, he grinned and rubbed his nose some more, and looked at me
like he thought that mewing noise was the smartest sound that ever was
made.

“Boy,” he says, grinning, “bo’n five hours ago. I’ve done named him
Burley--after the tobaccer association, yo’ know. Yes, _sir_, Burley
Peoples is his name--and he shore kin squall, the derned little cuss!”

“Yes,” I says, “you better stay with Burley. Lend me a rig of some sort
and I’ll take Bud home.”

So we went out to Beauregard’s stable with a lantern and hitched up one
of his hosses to a light road wagon. He went into the house and come
back agin with a mattress fur Bud to lie on, and a part of a bottle of
whiskey. And I drove back to that lumber pile. I guess I nearly killed
Bud getting him into there. But he wasn’t bleeding much from his hip--it
was his arm was giving him fits.

We went slow, and the dawn broke with us four miles out of town. It was
broad daylight, and early morning noises stirring everywheres, when we
drove up in front of an old farmhouse, with big brick chimbleys built on
the outside of it, a couple of miles farther on.



CHAPTER XIV


As I drove into the yard, a bare-headed old nigger with a game leg
throwed down an armful of wood he was gathering and went limping up
to the veranda as fast as he could. He opened the door and bawled out,
pointing to us, before he had it fairly open:

“O Marse _Will_yum! O Miss _Lucy_! Dey’ve brung him home! _Dar_ he!”

[Illustration: 0217]

A little, bright, black-eyed old lady like a wren comes running out of
the house, and chirps:

“O Bud--O my honey boy! Is he dead?”

“I reckon not, Miss Lucy,” says Bud raising himself up on the mattress
as she runs up to the wagon, and trying to act like everything was all
a joke. She was jest high enough to kiss him over the edge of the wagon
box. A worried-looking old gentleman come out the door, seen Bud and his
mother kissing each other, and then says to the old nigger man:

“George, yo’ old fool, what do yo’ mean by shouting out like that?”

“Marse Willyum--” begins George, explaining.

“Shut up,” says the old gentleman, very quiet. “Take the bay mare and go
for Doctor Po’ter.” Then he comes to the wagon and says:

“So they got yo’, Bud? Yo’ _would_ go nightriding like a rowdy and a thug!
Are yo’ much hurt?”

He said it easy and gentle, more than mad. But Bud, he flushed up, pale
as he was, and didn’t answer his dad direct. He turned to his mother and
said:

“Miss Lucy, dear, it would ‘a’ done yo’ heart good to see the way them
trust warehouses blazed up!”

And the old lady, smiling and crying both to oncet, says, “God bless her
brave boy.” But the old gentleman looked mighty serious, and his worry
settled into a frown between his eyes, and he turns to me and says:

“Yo’ must pardon us, sir, fo’ neglecting to thank yo’ sooner.” I told
him that would be all right, fur him not to worry none. And him and me
and Mandy, which was the nigger cook, got Bud into the house and into
his bed. And his mother gets that busy ordering Mandy and the old
gentleman around, to get things and fix things, and make Bud as easy
as she could, that you could see she was one of them kind of woman that
gets a lot of satisfaction out of having some one sick to fuss over. And
after quite a while George gets back with Doctor Porter.

He sets Bud’s arm, and he locates the bullet in him, and he says he
guesses he’ll do in a few weeks if nothing like blood poisoning nor
gangrene nor inflammation sets in.

Only the doctor says he “reckons” instead of he “guesses,” which they
all do down there. And they all had them easy-going, wait-a-bit kind
of voices, and didn’t see no pertic’ler importance in their “r’s.” It
wasn’t that you could spell it no different when they talked, but it
sounded different.

I eat my breakfast with the old gentleman, and then I took a sleep until
time fur dinner. They wouldn’t hear of me leaving that night. I fully
intended to go on the next day, but before I knowed it I been there a
couple of days, and have got very well acquainted with that fambly.

Well, that was a house divided agin itself. Miss Lucy, she is awful
favourable to all this nightrider business. She spunks up and her eyes
sparkles whenever she thinks about that there tobaccer trust.

She would of like to been a night-rider herself. But the old man, he
says law and order is the main pint. What the country needs, he says,
ain’t burning down tobaccer warehouses, and shooting your neighbours,
and licking them with switches, fur no wrong done never righted another
wrong.

“But you were in the Ku Klux Klan yo’self,” says Miss Lucy.

The old man says the Ku Kluxes was working fur a principle--the
principle of keeping the white supremacy on top of the nigger race. Fur
if you let ‘em quit work and go around balloting and voting it won’t
do. It makes ‘em biggity. And a biggity nigger is laying up trouble fur
himself. Because sooner or later he will get to thinking he is as good
as one of these here Angle-Saxtons you are always hearing so much talk
about down South. And if the Angle-Saxtons was to stand fur that, purty
soon they would be sociable equality. And next the hull dern country
would be niggerized. Them there Angle-Saxtons, that come over from
Ireland and Scotland and France and the Great British Islands and
settled up the South jest simply couldn’t afford to let that happen, he
says, and so they Ku Kluxed the niggers to make ‘em quit voting. It was
_their_ job to _make_ law and order, he says, which they couldn’t be with
niggers getting the idea they had a right to govern. So they Ku Kluxed
‘em like gentlemen. But these here night-riders, he says, is _agin_ law
and order--they can shoot up more law and order in one night than can be
manufactured agin in ten years. He was a very quiet, peaceable old man,
Mr. Davis was, and Bud says he was so dern foolish about law and order
he had to up and shoot a man, about fifteen years ago, who hearn him
talking that-a-way and said he reminded him of a Boston school teacher.

But Miss Lucy and Bud, they tells me what all them night-ridings is
fur. It seems this here tobaccer trust is jest as mean and low-down and
unprincipled as all the rest of them trusts. The farmers around there
raised considerable tobaccer--more’n they did of anything else. The
trust had shoved the price so low they couldn’t hardly make a living.
So they organized and said they would all hold their tobaccer fur a fair
price. But some of the farmers wouldn’t organize--said they had a right
to do what they pleased with their own tobaccer. So the night-riders was
formed to burn their barns and ruin their crops and whip ‘em and shoot
‘em and make ‘em jine. And also to burn a few trust warehouses now and
then, and show ‘em this free American people, composed mainly out of the
Angle-Saxton races, wasn’t going to take no sass from anybody.

An old feller by the name of Rufe Daniels who wouldn’t jine the
night-riders had been shot to death on his own door step, jest about a
mile away, only a week or so before. The night-riders mostly used these
here automatic shot-guns, but they didn’t bother with birdshot. They
mostly loaded their shells with buckshot. A few bicycle ball bearings
dropped out of old Rufe when they gathered him up and got him into shape
to plant. They is always some low-down cuss in every crowd that carries
things to the point where they get brutal, Bud says; and he feels like
them bicycle bearings was going a little too fur, though he wouldn’t let
on to his dad that he felt that-a-way.

So fur as I could see they hadn’t hurt the trust none to speak of, them
night-riders. But they had done considerable damage to their own county,
fur folks was moving away, and the price of land had fell. Still, I
guess they must of got considerable satisfaction out of raising the
deuce nights that-away; and sometimes that is worth a hull lot to a
feller. As fur as I could make out both the trust and the night-riders
was in the wrong. But, you take ‘em one at a time, personal-like, and
not into a gang, and most of them night-riders is good-dispositioned
folks. I never knowed any trusts personal, but mebby if you could ketch
‘em the same way they would be similar.

I asts George one day what he thought about it. George, he got mighty
serious right off, like he felt his answer was going to be used to
decide the hull thing by. He was carrying a lot of scraps on a plate to
a hound dog that had a kennel out near George’s cabin, and he walled his
eyes right thoughtful, and scratched his head with the fork he had been
scraping the plate with, but fur a while nothing come of it. Finally
George says:

“I’se ‘spec’ mah jedgment des about de same as Marse _Will_yum’s an’ Miss
_Lucy_‘s. I’se notice hit mos’ ingin’lly am de same.”

“That can’t be, George,” says I, “fur they think different ways.”

“Den if _dat_ am de case,” says George, “dey ain’t NO ONE kin settle hit
twell hit settles hitse’f.

“I’se mos’ ingin’lly notice a thing _do_ settle hitse’f arter a while.
Yass, _sah_, I’se notice dat! Long time ago dey was consid’ble gwines-on
in dis hyah county, Marse Daniel. I dunno ef yo’ evah heah ‘bout dat o’
not, Marse Daniel, but dey was a wah fit right hyah in dis hyah county.
Such gwines-on as nevah was--dem dar Yankees a-ridin’ aroun’ an’ eatin’
up de face o’ de yearth, like de plagues o’ Pha’aoah, Marse Daniel, and
rippin’ and rarin’ an’ racin’ an’ stealin’ evehything dey could lay
dey han’s on, Marse Daniel. An’ ouah folks a-ridin’ and a racin’ and
projickin’ aroun’ in de same onsettled way.

“Marse Willyum, he ‘low _he_ gwine settle dat dar wah he-se’f--yass, _sah!_
An’ he got on he hoss, and he ride away an’ jine Marse Jeb Stuart. But
dey don’ settle hit. Marse Ab’ham Linkum, he ‘low _he_ gwine settle hit,
an’ sen’ millyums an’ millyums mo’ o’ dem Yankees down hyah, Marse
Daniel. But dey des _on_settle hit wuss’n evah! But arter a while it des
settle _hit_se’f.

“An’ den freedom broke out among de niggers, and dey was mo’
gwines-_on_, an’ talkin’, an’ some on ‘em ‘lowed dey was gwine ter
be no mo’ wohk, Marse Daniel. But arter a while dat settle
_hit_se’f, and dey all went back to wohk agin. Den some on de
niggers gits de notion, Marse Daniel, dey gwine foh to _vote_. An’
dey was mo’ gwines-on, an’ de Ku Kluxes come a projickin’ aroun’ nights,
like de grave-yahds done been resu’rected, Marse Daniel, an’ den arter a
while dat trouble settle _hit_se’f.

“Den arter de Ku Kluxes dey was de time Miss Lucy Buckner gwine ter mahy
Marse Prent McMakin. An’ she don’ want to ma’hy him, if dey give her her
druthers about hit. But Ol’ Marse Kunnel Hampton, her gram-pa, and her
aunt, _my_ Miss Lucy hyah, dey ain’t gwine give her no druthers. And dey
was mo’ gwines-_on_. But dat settle _hit_se’f, too.”

George, he begins to chuckle, and I ast him how.

“Yass, _sah_, dat settle _hit_se’f. But I ‘spec’ Miss Lucy Buckner done
he’p some in de settle_ment_. Foh de day befoh de weddin’ was gwine ter
be, she ups an’ she runs off wid a Yankee frien’ of her brother, Kunnel
Tom Buckner. An’ I’se ‘spec’ Kunnel Tom an’ Marse Prent McMakin would o’
settle’ _him_ ef dey evah had o’ cotched him--dat dar David Ahmstrong!”

“Who?” says I.

“David Ahmstrong was his entitlement,” says George, “an’ he been gwine
to de same college as Marse Tom Buckner, up no’th somewhah. Dat’s
how-come he been visitin’ Marse Tom des befoh de weddin’ trouble done
settle _hit_ se’f dat-away.”

Well, it give me quite a turn to run onto the mention of that there
David Armstrong agin in this part of the country. Here he had been
jilting Miss Hampton way up in Indiany, and running away with another
girl down here in Tennessee. Then it struck me mebby it is jest
different parts of the same story I been hearing of, and Martha had got
her part a little wrong.

“George,” I says, “what did you say Miss Lucy Buckner’s gran-dad’s name
was?”

“Kunnel Hampton--des de same as _my_ Miss Lucy befo’ _she_ done ma’hied
Marse Willyum.”

That made me sure of it. It was the same woman. She had run away with
David Armstrong from this here same neighbourhood. Then after he got
her up North he had left her--or her left him. And then she wasn’t
Miss Buckner no longer. And she was mad and wouldn’t call herself Mrs.
Armstrong. So she moved away from where any one was lible to trace her
to, and took her mother’s maiden name, which was Hampton.

“Well,” I says, “what ever become of ‘em after they run off, George?”

But George has told about all he knows. They went North, according to
what everybody thinks, he says. Prent McMakin, he follered and hunted.
And Col. Tom Buckner, he done the same. Fur about a year Colonel Tom,
he was always making trips away from there to the North. But whether he
ever got any track of his sister and that David Armstrong nobody knowed.
Nobody never asked him. Old Colonel Hampton, he grieved and he grieved,
and not long after the runaway he up and died. And Tom Buckner, he
finally sold all he owned in that part of the country and moved further
south. George said he didn’t rightly know whether it was Alabama or
Florida. Or it might of been Georgia.

I thinks to myself that mebby Mrs. Davis would like to know where her
niece is, and that I better tell her about Miss Hampton being in that
there little Indiany town, and where it is. And then I thinks to myself
I better not butt in. Fur Miss Hampton has likely got her own reasons
fur keeping away from her folks, or else she wouldn’t do it. Anyhow,
it’s none of _my_ affair to bring the subject up to ‘em. It looks to
me like one of them things George has been gassing about--one of them
things that has settled itself, and it ain’t fur me to meddle and
unsettle it.

It set me to thinking about Martha, too. Not that I hadn’t thought of
her lots of times. I had often thought I would write her. But I kept
putting it off, and purty soon I kind of forgot Martha. I had seen a lot
of different girls of all kinds since I had seen Martha. Yet, whenever
I happened to think of Martha, I had always liked her best. Only moving
around the country so much makes it kind of hard to keep thinking steady
of the same girl. Besides, I had lost that there half of a ring, too.

But knowing what I did now about Miss Hampton being Miss Buckner--or
Mrs. Armstrong--and related to these Davises made me want to get away
from there. Fur that secret made me feel kind of sneaking, like I wasn’t
being frank and open with them. Yet if I had of told ‘em I would of felt
sneakinger yet fur giving Miss Hampton away. I never got into a mix up
that-a-way betwixt my conscience and my duty but what it made me feel
awful uncomfortable. So I guessed I would light out from there. They
wasn’t never no kinder, better people than them Davises, either. They
was so pleased with my bringing Bud home the night he was shot they
would of jest natcherally give me half their farm if I had of ast them
fur it. They wanted me to stay there--they didn’t say fur how long, and
I guess they didn’t give a dern. But I was in a sweat to ketch up with
Doctor Kirby agin.



CHAPTER XV


I made purty good time, and in a couple of days I was in Atlanta. I
knowed the doctor must of gone back into some branch of the medicine
game--the bottles told me that. I knowed it must be something that he
needed some special kind of bottles fur, too, or he wouldn’t of had them
shipped all that distance, but would of bought them nearer. I seen I was
a dern fool fur rushing off and not inquiring what kind of bottles, so I
could trace what he was into easier.

It’s hard work looking fur a man in a good-sized town. I hung around
hotel lobbies and places till I was tired of it, thinking he might
come in. And I looked through all the office buildings and read all the
advertisements in the papers. Then the second day I was there the state
fair started up and I went out to it.

I run acrost a couple I knowed out there the first thing--it was Watty
and the snake-charmer woman. Only she wasn’t charming them now. Her and
Watty had a Parisian Models’ show. I ast Watty where Dolly was. He says
he don’t know, that Dolly has quit him. By which I guess he means he has
quit her. I ast where Reginald is, and the Human Ostrich. But from
the way they answered my questions I seen I wasn’t welcome none around
there. I suppose that Mrs. Ostrich and Watty had met up agin somewheres,
and had jest natcherally run off with each other and left their
famblies. Like as not she had left poor old Reginald with that idiotic
ostrich feller to sell to strangers that didn’t know his disposition. Or
mebby by now Reginald was turned loose in the open country to shift
fur himself, among wild snakes that never had no human education nor
experience; and what chancet would a friendly snake like Reginald have
in a gang like that? Some women has jest simply got no conscience at all
about their husbands and famblies, and that there Mrs. Ostrich was one
of ‘em.

Well, a feller can be a derned fool sometimes. Fur all my looking around
I wasted a lot of time before I thought of going to the one natcheral
place--the freight depot of the road them bottles had been shipped by.
I had lost a week coming down. But freight often loses more time than
that. And it was at the freight depot that I found him.

Tickled? Well, yes! Both of us.

“Well, by George,” says he, “you’re good for sore eyes.”

Before he told me how he happened not to of drownded or blowed away or
anything he says we better fix up a bit. Which he meant I better. So he
buys me duds from head to heel, and we goes to a Turkish bath place and
I puts ‘em on. And then we goes and eats. Hearty.

“Now,” he says, “Fido Cut-up, how did you find me?” *

I told him about the bottles.

“A dead loss, those bottles,” he says. “I wanted some non-refillable
ones for a little scheme I had in mind, and I had to get them at a
certain place--and now the scheme’s up in the air and I can’t use ‘em.”

The doctor had changed some in looks in the year or more that had passed
since I saw him floating away in that balloon. And not fur the better.
He told me how he had blowed clean acrost Lake Erie in that there
balloon. And then when he got over land agin and went to pull the
cord that lets the parachute loose it wouldn’t work at first. He jest
natcherally drifted on into the midst of nowhere, he said--miles and
miles into Canada. When he lit the balloon had lost so much gas and was
flying so low that the parachute didn’t open out quick enough to do
much floating. So he lit hard, and come near being knocked out fur good.
But--

    *_Author’s Note_--Can it be that Danny struggles vaguely
    to report some reference to _fidus achates_?

that wasn’t the worst of it, fur the exposure had crawled into his lungs
by the time he found a house, and he got newmonia into them also, and
like to of died. Whilst I was laying sick he had been sick also, only
his’n lasted much longer.

But he tells me he has jest struck an idea fur a big scheme. No little
schemes go fur him any more, he says. He wants money. Real money.

“How you going to get it?” I asts him.

“Come along and I’ll tell you,” he says. “We’ll take a walk, and I’ll
show you how I got my idea.”

We left the restaurant and went along the brag street of that town,
which it is awful proud of, past where the stores stops and the houses
begins. We come to a fine-looking house on a corner--a swell place it
was, with lots of palms and ferns and plants setting on the verandah
and showing through the windows. And stables back of it; and back of
the stables a big yard with noises coming from it like they was circus
animals there. Which I found out later they really was, kept fur pets.
You could tell the people that lived there had money.

“This,” says Doctor Kirby, as we walked by, “is the house that Jackson
built. Dr. Julius Jackson--_old_ Doctor Jackson, the man with an idea! The
idea made all the money you smell around here.”

[Illustration: 0235]

“What idea?”

“The idea--the glorious humanitarian and philanthropic idea--of taking
the kinks and curls out of the hair of the Afro-American brother,” says
Doctor Kirby, “at so much per kink.”

This Doctor Jackson, he says, sells what he calls Anti-Curl to the
niggers. It is to straighten out their hair so it will look like white
people’s hair. They is millions and millions of niggers, and every
nigger has millions and millions of kinks, and so Doctor Jackson has
got rich at it. So rich he can afford to keep that there personal circus
menagerie in his back yard, for his little boy to play with, and many
other interesting things. He must be worth two, three million dollars,
Doctor Kirby says, and still a-making it, with more niggers growing up
all the time fur to have their hair unkinked. Especially mulattoes
and yaller niggers. Doctor Kirby says thinking what a great idea that
Anti-Curl was give him his own great idea. They is a gold mine there, he
says, and Dr. Julius Jackson has only scratched a little off the top of
it, but _he_ is going to dig deeper.

“Why is it that the Afro-American brother buys Anti-Curl?” he asts.

“Why?” I asts.

“Because,” he says, “he wants to be as much like a white man as he
possibly can. He strives to burst his birth’s invidious bar, Danny.
They talk about progress and education for the Afro-American brother, and
uplift and advancement and industrial education and manual training
and all that sort of thing. Especially we Northerners. But what the
Afro-American brother thinks about and dreams about and longs for and
prays to be--when he thinks at all--is to be white. Education, to his
mind, is learning to talk like a white man. Progress means aping the
white man. Religion is dying and going to heaven and being a _white_
angel--listen to his prayers and sermons and you’ll find that out. He’ll
do anything he can, or give anything he can get his Ethiopian grubhooks
on, for something that he thinks is going to make him more like a white
man. Poor devil! Therefore the millions of Doctor Jackson Anti-Curl.

“All this Doctor Jackson Anti-Curl has discovered and thought out and
acted upon. If he had gone just one step farther the Afro-American
brother would have hailed him as a greater man than Abraham Lincoln,
or either of the Washingtons, George or Booker. It remains for me,
Danny--for _us_--to carry the torch ahead--to take up the work where the
imagination of Doctor Jackson Anti-Curl has laid it down.”

“How?” asts I.

“_We’ll put up and sell a preparation to turn the negroes white!_”

_That_ was his great idea. He was more excited over it than I ever seen
him before about anything.

It sounded like so easy a way to get rich it made me wonder why no one
had ever done it before, if it could really be worked. I didn’t believe
much it could be worked.

But Doctor Kirby, he says he has begun his experiments already, with
arsenic. Arsenic, he says, will bleach anything. Only he is kind of
afraid of arsenic, too. If he could only get hold of something that
didn’t cost much, and that would whiten them up fur a little while, he
says, it wouldn’t make no difference if they did get black agin. This
here Anti-Curl stuff works like that--it takes the kinks out fur a
little while, and they come back agin. But that don’t seem to hurt the
sale none. It only calls fur _more_ of Doctor Jackson’s medicine.

The doctor takes me around to the place he boards at, and shows me a
nigger waiter he has been experimenting on. He had paid the nigger’s
fine in a police court fur slashing another nigger some with a knife,
and kept him from going into the chain-gang. So the nigger agreed he
could use his hide to try different kinds of medicines on. He was a
velvety-looking, chocolate-coloured kind of nigger to start with, and
the best Doctor Kirby had been able to do so fur was to make a few
little liver-coloured spots come onto him. But it was making the nigger
sick, and the doctor was afraid to go too fur with it, fur Sam might die
and we would be at the expense of another nigger. Peroxide of hidergin
hadn’t even phased him. Nor a lot of other things we tried onto him.

You never seen a nigger with his colour running into him so deep as
Sam’s did. Sam, he was always apologizing about it, too. You could see
it made him feel real bad to think his colour was so stubborn. He felt
like it wasn’t being polite to the doctor and me, Sam did, fur his skin
to act that-a-way. He was a willing nigger, Sam was. The doctor, he says
he will find out the right stuff if he has to start at the letter A and
work Sam through every drug in the hull blame alphabet down to Z.

Which he finally struck it. I don’t exactly know what she had in her,
but she was a mixture of some kind. The only trouble with her was she
didn’t work equal and even--left Sam’s face looking peeled and spotty in
places. But still, in them spots, Sam was six shades lighter.
The doctor says that is jest what he wants, that there
passing on-to-the-next-cage-we-have-the-spotted-girocutus-look, as he
calls it. The chocolate brown and the lighter spots side by side, he
says, made a regular Before and After out of Sam’s face, and was the
best advertisement you could have.

Then we goes and has a talk with Doctor Jackson himself. Doctor Kirby
has the idea mebby he will put some money into it. Doctor Jackson was
setting on his front veranda with his chair tilted back, and his feet,
with red carpet slippers on ‘em, was on the railing, and he was smoking
one of these long black cigars that comes each one in a little glass
tube all by itself. He looks Sam over very thoughtful, and he says:

“Yes, it will do the work well enough. I can see that. But will it
sell?”

Doctor Kirby makes him quite a speech. I never hearn him make a better
one. Doctor Jackson he listens very calm, with his thumbs in the
armholes of his vest, and moving his eyebrows up and down like he
enjoyed it. But he don’t get excited none. Finally Doctor Kirby says he
will undertake to show that it will sell--me and him will take a trip
down into the black country ourselves and show what can be done with it,
and take Sam along fur an object lesson.

Well, they was a lot of rag-chewing. Doctor Jackson don’t warm up none,
and he asts a million questions. Like how much it costs a bottle to make
it, and what was our idea how much it orter sell fur. He says finally
if we can sell a certain number of bottles in so long a time he will put
some money into it. Only, he says, they will be a stock company, and he
will have to have fifty-one per cent. of the stock, or he won’t put no
money into it. He says if things go well he will let Doctor Kirby be
manager of that company, and let him have some stock in it too, and he
will be president and treasurer of it himself.

Doctor Kirby, he didn’t like that, and said so. Said _he_ was going to
organize that stock company, and control it himself. But Doctor Jackson
said he never put money into nothing he couldn’t run. So it was settled
we would give the stuff a try-out and report to him. Before we went away
from there it looked to me like Doctor Kirby and me was going to work
fur this here Doctor Jackson, instead of making all them there millions
fur ourselves. Which I didn’t take much to that Anti-Curl man myself; he
was so cold-blooded like.

I didn’t like the scheme itself any too well, neither. Not any way you
could look at it. In the first place it seemed like a mean trick on the
niggers. Then I didn’t much believe we could get away with it.

The more I looked him over the more I seen Doctor Kirby had changed
considerable. When I first knowed him he liked to hear himself talking
and he liked to live free and easy and he liked to be running around
the country and all them things, more’n he liked to be making money.
Of course, he wanted it; but that wasn’t the _only_ thing he was into the
Sagraw game fur. If he had money, he was free with it and would help
most any one out of a hole. But he wasn’t thinking it and talking it all
the time then.

But now he was thinking money and dreaming money and talking of nothing
but how to get it. And planning to make it out of skinning them niggers.
He didn’t care a dern how he worked on their feelings to get it. He
didn’t even seem to care whether he killed Sam trying them drugs onto
him. He wanted _money_, and he wanted it so bad he was ready and willing
to take up with most any wild scheme to make it.

They was something about him now that didn’t fit in much with the Doctor
Kirby I had knowed. It seemed like he had spells when he saw himself how
he had changed. He wasn’t gay and joking all the time like he had been
before, neither. I guess the doctor was getting along toward fifty years
old. I suppose he thought if he was ever going to get anything out of
his gift of the gab he better settle down to something, and quit fooling
around, and do it right away. But it looked to me like he might never
turn the trick. Fur he was drinking right smart all the time. Drinking
made him think a lot, and thinking was making him look old. He was
more’n one year older than he had been a year ago.

He kept a quart bottle in his room now. The night after we had took Sam
to see Doctor Jackson we was setting in his room, and he was hitting it
purty hard.

“Danny,” he says to me, after a while, like he was talking out loud to
himself too, “what did you think of Doctor Jackson?”

“I don’t like him much,” I says.

“Nor I,” he says, frowning, and takes a drink. Then he says, after quite
a few minutes of frowning and thinking, under his breath like: “He’s a
blame sight more decent than I am, for all of that.”

“Why?” I asts him.

“Because Doctor Jackson,” he says, “hasn’t the least idea that he _isn’t_
decent, and getting his money in a decent way. While at one time I
was--”

He breaks off and don’t say what he was. I asts him. “I was going to
say a gentleman,” he says, “but on reflection, I doubt if I was ever
anything but a cheap imitation. I never heard a man say that he was
a gentleman at one time, that I didn’t doubt him. Also,” he goes on,
working himself into a better humour again with the sound of his own
voice, “if I _had_ ever been a gentleman at any time, enough of it would
surely have stuck to me to keep me out of partnership with a man who
cheats niggers.”

He takes another drink and says even twenty years of running around the
country couldn’t of took all the gentleman out of him like this, if he
had ever been one, fur you can break, you can scatter the vase if you
will, but the smell of the roses will stick round it still.

I seen now the kind of conversations he is always having with himself
when he gets jest so drunk and is thinking hard. Only this time it
happens to be out loud.

“What is a gentleman?” I asts him, thinking if he wasn’t one it might
take his mind off himself a little to tell me. “What _makes_ one?”

“Authorities differ,” says Doctor Kirby, slouching down in his chair,
and grinning like he knowed a joke he wasn’t going to tell no one. “I
heard Doctor Jackson describe himself that way the other day.”

Well, speaking personal, I never had smelled none of roses. I wasn’t
nothing but trash myself, so being a gentleman didn’t bother me one way
or the other. The only reason I didn’t want to see them niggers bunked
so very bad was only jest because it was such a low-down, ornery kind of
trick.

“It ain’t too late,” I says, “to pull out of this nigger scheme yet and
get into something more honest.”

“I don’t know,” he says thoughtful. “I think perhaps it _is_ too late.”
 And he sets there looking like a man that is going over a good many
years of life in his mind. Purty soon he says:

“As far as honesty goes--it isn’t that so much, O
Daniel-come-to-judgment! It’s about as honest as most medicine games.
It’s--” He stopped and frowned agin.

“What is it?”

“It’s their being _niggers_,” he says.

That made the difference fur me, too. I dunno how, nor why.

“I’ve tried nearly everything but blackmail,” he says, “and I’ll
probably be trying that by this time next year, if this scheme fails.
But there’s something about their being niggers that makes me sick of
this thing already--just as the time has come to make the start. And
I don’t know _why_ it should, either.” He slipped another big slug of
whiskey into him, and purty soon he asts me:

“Do you know what’s the matter with me?”

I asts him what.

“I’m too decent to be a crook,” he says, “and too crooked to be decent.
You’ve got to be one thing or the other steady to make it pay.”

Then he says:

“Did you ever hear of the descent to Avernus, Danny?”

“I might,” I tells him, “and then agin I mightn’t, but if I ever did, I
don’t remember what she is. What is she?”

“It’s the chute to the infernal regions,” he says. “They say it’s
greased. But it isn’t. It’s really no easier sliding down than it is
climbing back.”

Well, I seen this nigger scheme of our’n wasn’t the only thing that was
troubling Doctor Kirby that night. It was thinking of all the schemes
like it in the years past he had went into, and how he had went into ‘em
light-hearted and more’n half fur fun when he was a young man, and
now he wasn’t fitten fur nothing else but them kind of schemes, and he
knowed it. He was seeing himself how he had been changing, like another
person could of seen it. That’s the main trouble with drinking to fergit
yourself. You fergit the wrong part of yourself.

I left him purty soon, and went along to bed. My room was next to his’n,
and they was a door between, so the two could be rented together if
wanted, I suppose. I went to sleep and woke up agin with a start out of
a dream that had in it millions and millions and millions of niggers,
every way you looked, and their mouths was all open red and their eyes
walled white, fit to scare you out of your shoes.

I hearn Doctor Kirby moving around in his room. But purty soon he sets
down and begins to talk to himself. Everything else was quiet. I was
kind of worried about him, he had taken so much, and hoped he wouldn’t
get a notion to go downtown that time o’ night. So I thinks I will see
how he is acting, and steps over to the door between the rooms.

The key happened to be on my side, and I unlocked it. But she only opens
a little ways, fur his wash stand was near to the hinge end of the door.

I looked through. He is setting by the table, looking at a woman’s
picture that is propped up on it, and talking to himself. He has never
hearn me open the door, he is so interested. But somehow, he don’t look
drunk. He looks like he had fought his way up out of it, somehow--his
forehead was sweaty, and they was one intoxicated lock of hair sticking
to it; but that was the only un-sober-looking thing about him. I guess
his legs would of been unsteady if he had of tried to walk, but his
intellects was uncomfortable and sober.

He is still keeping up that same old argument with himself, or with the
picture.

“It isn’t any use,” I hearn him say, looking at the picture.

Then he listened like he hearn it answering him. “Yes, you always
say just that--just that,” he says. “And I don’t know why I keep on
listening to you.”

The way he talked, and harkened fur an answer, when they was nothing
there to answer, give me the creeps.

“You don’t help me,” he goes on, “you don’t help me at all. You only
make it harder. Yes, this thing is worse than the others. I know that.
But I want money--and fool things like this _have_ sometimes made it. No,
I won’t give it up. No, there’s no use making any more promises now. I
know myself now. And you ought to know me by this time, too. Why can’t
you let me alone altogether? I should think, when you see what I am,
you’d let me be.

“God help you! if you’d only stay away it wouldn’t be so hard to go to
hell!”



CHAPTER XVI


There’s a lot of counties in Georgia where the blacks are equal in
number to the whites, and two or three counties where the blacks number
over the whites by two to one. It was fur a little town in one of the
latter that we pinted ourselves, Doctor Kirby and me and Sam--right into
the blackest part of the black belt.

That country is full of big-sized plantations, where they raise cotton,
cotton, cotton, and then _more_ cotton. Some of ‘em raises fruit, too, and
other things, of course; but cotton is the main stand-by, and it looks
like it always will be.

Some places there shows that things can’t be so awful much changed since
slavery days, and most of the niggers are sure enough country niggers
yet. Some rents their land right out from the owners, and some of ‘em
crops it on the shares, and very many of ‘em jest works as hands. A lot
of ‘em don’t do nigh so well now as they did when their bosses was their
masters, they tell me; and then agin, some has done right well on their
own hook. They intrusted me, because I never had been use to looking at
so many niggers. Every way you turn there they is niggers and then more
niggers.

Them that thinks they is awful easy to handle out of a natcheral respect
fur white folks has got another guess coming. They ain’t so bad to get
along with if you keep it most pintedly shoved into their heads they
_is_ niggers. You got to do that especial in the black belt, jest because
they _is_ so many of ‘em. They is children all their lives, mebby, till
some one minute of craziness may strike one of them, and then he is a
devil temporary. Mebby, when the crazy fit has passed, some white woman
is worse off than if she was dead, or mebby she _is_ dead, or mebby a
loonatic fur life, and that nigger is a candidate fur a lynching bee and
ginerally elected by an anonymous majority.

Not that _all_ niggers is that-a-way, nor _half_ of ‘em, nor very _many_ of
‘em, even--but you can never tell _which_ nigger is going to be. So in the
black belt the white folks is mighty pertic’ler who comes along fooling
with their niggers. Fur you can never tell what turn a nigger’s thoughts
will take, once anything at all stirs ‘em up.

We didn’t know them things then, Doctor Kirby and me didn’t. We didn’t
know we was moving light-hearted right into the middle of the biggest
question that has ever been ast. Which I disremember exactly how that
nigger question is worded, but they is always asting it in the South,
and answering of it different ways. We hadn’t no idea how suspicious the
white people in them awful black spots on the map can get over any one
that comes along talking to their niggers. We didn’t know anything about
niggers much, being both from the North, except what Doctor Kirby had
counted on when he made his medicine, and _that_ he knowed second-handed
from other people. We didn’t take ‘em very serious, nor all the talk we
hearn about ‘em down South.

But even at that we mightn’t of got into any trouble if it hadn’t of
been fur old Bishop Warren. But that is getting ahead of the story.

We got into that little town--I might jest as well call it
Cottonville--jest about supper time. Cottonville is a little place
of not more’n six hundred people. I guess four hundred of ‘em must be
niggers.

After supper we got acquainted with purty nigh all the prominent
citizens in town. They was friendly with us, and we was friendly with
them. Georgia had jest went fur prohibition a few months before that,
and they hadn’t opened up these here near-beer bar-rooms in the little
towns yet, like they had in Atlanta and the big towns. Georgia had went
prohibition so the niggers couldn’t get whiskey, some said; but others
said they didn’t know _what_ its excuse was. Them prominent citizens was
loafing around the hotel and every now and then inviting each other very
mysterious into a back room that use to be a pool parlour. They had
been several jugs come to town by express that day. We went back several
times ourselves, and soon began to get along purty well with them
prominent citizens.

Talking about this and that they finally edges around to the one
thing everybody is sure to get to talking about sooner or later in the
South--niggers. And then they gets to telling us about this here Bishop
Warren I has mentioned.

He was a nigger bishop, Bishop Warren was, and had a good deal of white
blood into him, they say. An ashy-coloured nigger, with bumps on his
face, fat as a possum, and as cunning as a fox. He had plenty of brains
into his head, too; but his brains had turned sour in his head the last
few years, and the bishop had crazy streaks running through his sense
now, like fat and lean mixed in a slab of bacon. He used to be friends
with a lot of big white folks, and the whites depended on him at one
time to preach orderliness and obedience and agriculture and being
in their place to the niggers. Fur years they thought he preached
that-a-way. He always _did_ preach that-a-way when any whites was around,
and he set on platforms sometimes with white preachers, and he got good
donations fur schemes of different kinds. But gradual the suspicion got
around that when he was alone with a lot of niggers his nigger blood
would get the best of him, and what he preached wasn’t white supremacy
at all, but hopefulness of being equal.

So the whites had fell away from him, and then his graft was gone,
and then his brains turned sour in his head and got to working and
fermenting in it like cider getting hard, and he made a few bad breaks
by not being careful what he said before white people. But the niggers
liked him all the better fur that.

They always had been more or less hell in the bishop’s heart. He had
brains and he knowed it, and the white folks had let him see _they_ knowed
it, too. And he was part white, and his white forefathers had been big
men in their day, and yet, in spite of all of that, he had to herd with
niggers and to pertend he liked it. He was both white and black in his
feelings about things, so some of his feelings counterdicted others, and
one of these here race riots went on all the time in his own insides.
But gradual he got to the place where they was spells he hated both
whites and niggers, but he hated the whites the worst. And now, in the
last two or three years, since his crazy streaks had growed as big
as his sensible streaks, or bigger, they was no telling what he would
preach to them niggers. But whatever he preached most of them would
believe. It might be something crazy and harmless, or it might be crazy
and harmful.

He had been holding some revival meetings in nigger churches right there
in that very county, and was at it not fur away from there right then.
The idea had got around he was preaching some most unusual foolishness
to the blacks. Fur the niggers was all acting like they knowed something
too good to mention to the white folks, all about there. But some white
men had gone to one of the meetings, and the bishop had preached one of
his old-time sermons whilst they was there, telling the niggers to be
orderly and agriculturous--he was considerable of a fox yet. But he
and the rest of the niggers was so _derned_ anxious to be thought
agriculturous and servitudinous that the whites smelt a rat, and wished
he would go, fur they didn’t want to chase him without they had to.

Jest when we was getting along fine one of them prominent citizens asts
the doctor was we there figgering on buying some land?

“No,” says the doctor, “we wasn’t.”

They was silence fur quite a little spell. Each prominent citizen had
mebby had his hopes of unloading some. They all looks a little sad, and
then another prominent citizen asts us into the back room agin.

When we returns to the front room another prominent citizen makes
a little speech that was quite beautiful to hear, and says mebby we
represents some new concern that ain’t never been in them parts and is
figgering on buying cotton.

“No,” the doctor says, “we ain’t cotton buyers.”

Another prominent citizen has the idea mebby we is figgering on one of
these here inter-Reuben trolley lines, so the Rubes in one village can
ride over and visit the Rubes in the next. And another one thinks mebby
we is figgering on a telephone line. And each one makes a very eloquent
little speech about them things, and rings in something about our fair
Southland. And when both of them misses their guess it is time fur
another visit to the back room.

Was we selling something?

We was.

Was we selling fruit trees?

We wasn’t.

Finally, after every one has a chew of natcheral leaf tobaccer all
around, one prominent citizen makes so bold as to ast us very courteous
if he might enquire what it was we was selling.

The doctor says medicine.

Then they was a slow grin went around that there crowd of prominent
citizens. And once agin we has to make a trip to that back room. Fur
they are all sure we must be taking orders fur something to beat that
there prohibition game. When they misses that guess they all gets kind
of thoughtful and sad. A couple of ‘em don’t take no more interest in
us, but goes along home sighing-like, as if it wasn’t no difference _what_
we sold as long as it wasn’t what they was looking fur.

But purty soon one of them asts:

“What _kind_ of medicine?”

The doctor, he tells about it.

When he finishes you never seen such a change as had come onto the faces
of that bunch. I never seen such disgusted prominent citizens in my hull
life. They looked at each other embarrassed, like they had been ketched
at something ornery. And they went out one at a time, saying good night
to the hotel-keeper and in the most pinted way taking no notice of us at
all. It certainly was a chill. We sees something is wrong, and we begins
to have a notion of what it is.

The hotel-keeper, he spits out his chew, and goes behind his little
counter and takes a five-cent cigar out of his little show case and
bites the end off careful. Then he leans his elbows onto his counter and
reads our names to himself out of the register book, and looks at us,
and from us to the names, and from the names to us, like he is trying to
figger out how he come to let us write ‘em there. Then he wants to know
where we come from before we come to Atlanta, where we had registered
from. We tells him we is from the North. He lights his cigar like he
didn’t think much of that cigar and sticks it in his mouth and looks at
us so long in an absent-minded kind of way it goes out.

Then he says we orter go back North.

“Why?” asts the doctor.

He chewed his cigar purty nigh up to the middle of it before he
answered, and when he spoke it was a soft kind of a drawl--not mad or
loud--but like they was sorrowful thoughts working in him.

“Yo’ all done struck the wo’st paht o’ the South to peddle yo’ niggah
medicine in, sah. I reckon yo’ must love ‘em a heap to be that concerned
over the colour of their skins.”

And he turned his back on us and went into the back room all by himself.

We seen we was in wrong in that town. The doctor says it will be no use
trying to interduce our stuff there, and we might as well leave there
in the morning and go over to Bairdstown, which was a little place about
ten miles off the railroad, and make our start there.

So we got a rig the next morning and drove acrost the country. No one
bid us good-bye, neither, and Doctor Kirby says it’s a wonder they
rented us the rig.

But before we started that morning we noticed a funny thing. We hadn’t
so much as spoke to any nigger, except our own nigger Sam, and he
couldn’t of told _all_ the niggers in that town about the stuff to turn
niggers white, even if he had set up all night to do it. But every last
nigger we saw looked like he knowed something about us. Even after we
left town our nigger driver hailed two or three niggers in the road that
acted that-away. It seemed like they was all awful polite to us. And
yet they was different in their politeness than they was to them Georgia
folks, which is their natcheral-born bosses--acted more familiar,
somehow, as if they knowed we must be thinking about the same thing they
was thinking about.

About half-way to Bairdstown we stopped at a place to get a drink of
water. Seemingly the white folks was away fur the day, and an old nigger
come up and talked to our driver while Sam and us was at the well.

I seen them cutting their eyes at us, whilst they was unchecking the
hosses to let them drink too, and then I hearn the one that belonged
there say:

“Is yo’ _suah_ dat hit air dem?”

“_Suah!_” says the driver.

“How-come yo’ so all-powerful _suah_ about hit?”

The driver pertended the harness needed some fixing, and they went
around to the other side of the team and tinkered with one of the
traces, a-talking to each other. I hearn the old nigger say, kind of
wonderized:

“Is dey a-gwine dar _now_?”

Sam, he was pulling a bucket of water up out of the well fur us with a
windlass. The doctor says to him:

“Sam, what does all this mean?”

Sam, he pertends he don’t know what the doctor is talking about.
But Doctor Kirby he finally pins him down. Sam hemmed and hawed
considerable, making up his mind whether he better lie to us or not.
Then, all of a sudden, he busted out into an awful fit of laughing, and
like to of fell in the well. Seemingly he decided fur to tell us the
truth.

From what Sam says that there bishop has been holding revival meetings
in Big Bethel, which is a nigger church right on the edge of Bairdstown,
and niggers fur miles around has been coming night after night, and some
of them whooping her up daytimes too. And the bishop has worked himself
up the last three or four nights to where he has been perdicting and
prophesying, fur the spirit has hit the meeting hard.

What he has been prophesying, Sam says, is the coming of a Messiah fur
the nigger race--a new Elishyah, he says, as will lead them from out’n
their inequality and bring ‘em up to white standards right on the spot.
The whites has had their Messiah, the bishop says, but the niggers ain’t
never had none of their _special own_ yet. And they needs one bad, and one
is sure a-coming.

It seems the whites don’t know yet jest what the bishop’s been
a-preaching. But every nigger fur miles on every side of Big Bethel is
a-listening and a-looking fur signs and omens, and has been fur two,
three days now. This here half-crazy bishop has got ‘em worked up to
where they is ready to believe anything, or do anything.

So the night before when the word got out in Cottonville that we had
some scheme to make the niggers white, the niggers there took up with
the idea that the doctor was mebby the feller the bishop had been
prophesying about, and for a sign and a omen and a miracle of his grace
and powers was going out to Big Bethel to turn ‘em white. Poor devils,
they didn’t see but what being turned white orter be a part of what they
was to get from the coming of that there Messiah.

News spreads among niggers quicker than among whites. No one knows how
they do it. But I’ve hearn tales about how when war times was there,
they would frequent have the news of a big fight before the white folks’
papers would. Soldiers has told me that in them there Philippine Islands
we conquered from Spain, where they is so much nigger blood mixed up
with other kinds in the islanders, this mysterious spreading around of
news is jest the same. And jest since nine o’clock the night before, the
news had spread fur miles around that Bishop Warren’s Messiah was on his
way, and was going fur to turn the bishop white to show his power and
grace, and he had with him one he had turned part white, and that was
Sam, and one he had turned clear white, and that was me. And they was to
be signs and wonders to behold at Big Bethel, with pillars of cloud and
sounds of trumpets and fire squirting down from heaven, like it always
use to be in them old Bible days, and them there niggers to be led
singing and shouting and rejoicing into a land of milk and honey,
forevermore, _Amen!_

That’s what Sam says they are looking fur, dozens and scores and
hundreds of them niggers round about. Sam, he had lived in town five
or six years, and he looked down on all these here ignoramus country
niggers. So he busts out laughing at first, and he pertends like he
don’t take no stock in any of it. Besides, he knowed well enough he
wasn’t spotted up by no Messiah, but it was the dope in the bottles done
it. But as he told about them goings-on Sam got more and more interested
and warmed up to it, and his voice went into a kind of a sing-song like
he was prophesying himself. And the other two niggers quit pertending to
fool around the team and edged a little closeter, and a little closeter
yet, with their mouths open and their heads a-nodding and the whites of
their eyes a-rolling.

Fur my part, I never hearn such a lot of dern foolishness in all my
life. But the doctor, he says nothing at all. He listens to Sam ranting
and rolling out big words and raving, and only frowns. He climbs back
into the buggy agin silent, and all the rest of the way to Bairdstown
he set there with that scowl on his face. I guesses he was thinking now,
the way things had shaped up, he wouldn’t sell none of his stuff at all
without he fell right in with the reception chance had planned fur him.
But if he did fall in with it, and pertend like he was a Messiah to
them niggers, he could get all they had. He was mebby thinking how much
ornerier that would make the hull scheme.



CHAPTER XVII


We got to Bairdstown early enough, but we didn’t go to work there. We
wasted all that day. They was something working in the doctor’s head he
wasn’t talking about. I supposed he was getting cold feet on the hull
proposition. Anyhow, he jest set around the little tavern in that place
and done nothing all afternoon.

The weather was fine, and we set out in front. We hadn’t set there
more’n an hour till I could tell we was being noticed by the blacks,
not out open and above board. But every now and then one or two or three
would pass along down the street, and lazy about and take a look at
us. They pertended they wasn’t noticing, but they was. The word had got
around, and they was a feeling in the air I didn’t like at all. Too much
caged-up excitement among the niggers. The doctor felt it too, I could
see that. But neither one of us said anything about it to the other.

Along toward dusk we takes a walk. They was a good-sized crick at the
edge of that little place, and on it an old-fashioned worter mill. Above
the mill a little piece was a bridge. We crossed it and walked along a
road that follered the crick bank closte fur quite a spell.

It wasn’t much of a town--something betwixt a village and a
settlement--although they was going to run a branch of the railroad over
to it before very long. It had had a chancet to get a railroad once,
years before that. But it had said then it didn’t want no railroad. So
until lately every branch built through that part of the country grinned
very sarcastic and give it the go-by.

They was considerable woods standing along the crick, and around a turn
in the road we come onto Sam, all of a sudden, talking with another
nigger. Sam was jest a-laying it off to that nigger, but he kind of
hushed as we come nearer. Down the road quite a little piece was a
good-sized wooden building that never had been painted and looked like
it was a big barn. Without knowing it the doctor and me had been pinting
ourselves right toward Big Bethel.

The nigger with Sam he yells out, when he sees us:

“Glory be! _Hyah_ dey comes! Hyah dey comes _now!_”

[Illustration: 0265]

And he throwed up his arms, and started on a lope up the road toward the
church, singing out every ten or fifteen yards. A little knot of niggers
come out in front of the church when they hearn him coming.

Sam, he stood his ground, and waited fur us to come up to him, kind of
apologetic and sneaking--looking about something or other.

“What kind of lies have you been telling these niggers, Sam?” says the
doctor, very sharp and short and mad-like.

Sam, he digs a stone out’n the road with the toe of his shoe, and kind
of grins to himself, still looking sheepish. But he says he opinionates
he been telling them nothing at all.

“I dunno how-come dey get all dem nigger notions in dey fool haid,” Sam
says, “but dey all waitin’ dar inside de chu’ch do’--some of de mos’
faiful an’ de mos’ pra’rful ones o’ de Big Bethel cong’gation been dar
fo’ de las’ houah a-waitin’ an’ a-watchin’, spite o’ de fac’ dat reg’lah
meetin’ ain’t gwine ter be called twell arter supper. De bishop, he dar
too. Dey got some dese hyah coal-ile lamps dar des inside de chu’ch do’
an’ dey been keepin’ on ‘em lighted, daytimes an’ night times, fo’ two
days now, kaze dey say dey ain’t gwine fo’ ter be cotched napping when
de bridegroom _com_eth. Yass, _sah!_--dey’s ten o’ dese hyah vergims dar,
five of ‘em sleepin’ an’ five of ‘em watchin’, an’ a-takin’ tuhns at
hit, an’ mebby dat how-come free or fouah dey bes’ young colo’hed mens
been projickin’ aroun’ dar all arternoon, a-helpin’ dem dat’s a-waitin’
twell de bridegroom _com_eth!”

We seen a little knot of them, down the road there in front of the
church, gathering around the nigger that had been with Sam. They all
starts toward us. But one man steps out in front of them all, and turns
toward them and holds his hands up, and waves them back. They all stops
in their tracks.

Then he turns his face toward us, and comes slow and sollum down the
road in our direction, walking with a cane, and moving very dignified.
He was a couple of hundred yards away.

But as he come closeter we gradually seen him plainer and plainer. He
was a big man, and stout, and dressed very neat in the same kind of rig
as white bishops wear, with one of these white collars that buttons in
the back. I suppose he was coming on to meet us alone, because no one
was fitten fur to give us the first welcome but himself.

Well, it was all dern foolishness, and it was hard to believe it could
all happen, and they ain’t so many places in this here country it _could_
happen. But fur all of it being foolishness, when he come down the road
toward us so dignified and sollum and slow I ketched myself fur a minute
feeling like we really had been elected to something and was going to
take office soon. And Sam, as the bishop come closeter and closeter, got
to jerking and twitching with the excitement that he had been keeping
in--and yet all the time Sam knowed it was dope and works and not faith
that had made him spotted that-a-way.

He stops, the bishop does, about ten yards from us and looks us over.

“Ah yo’ de gennleman known ter dis hyah sinful genehation by de style
an’ de entitlemint o’ Docto’ Hahtley Kirby?” he asts the doctor very
ceremonious and grand.

The doctor give him a look that wasn’t very encouraging, but he nodded
to him.

“Will yo’ dismiss yo’ sehvant in ordeh dat we kin hol’ convehse an’
communion in de midst er privacy?”

The doctor, he nods to Sam, and Sam moseys along toward the church.

“Now, then,” says the doctor, sudden and sharp, “take off your hat and
tell me what you want.”

The bishop’s hand goes up to his head with a jerk before he thought.
Then it stops there, while him and the doctor looks at each other. The
bishop’s mouth opens like he was wondering, but he slowly pulls his
hat off and stands there bare-headed in the road. But he wasn’t really
humble, that bishop.

“Now,” says the doctor, “tell me in as straight talk as you’ve got what
all this damned foolishness among you niggers means.”

A queer kind of look passed over the bishop’s face. He hadn’t expected
to be met jest that way, mebby. Whether he himself had really believed
in the coming of that there new Messiah he had been perdicting, I never
could settle in my mind. Mebby he had been getting ready to pass _Himself_
off fur one before we come along and the niggers all got the fool idea
Doctor Kirby was it. Before the bishop spoke agin you could see his
craziness and his cunningness both working in his face. But when he did
speak he didn’t quit being ceremonious nor dignified.

“De wohd has gone fo’th among de faiful an’ de puah in heaht,” he says,
“dat er man has come accredited wi’ signs an’ wi’ mahvels an’ de poweh
o’ de sperrit fo’ to lay his han’ on de sons o’ Ham an’ ter make ‘em des
de same in colluh as de yuther sons of ea’th.”

“Then that word is a lie,” says the doctor. “I _did_ come here to try out
some stuff to change the colour of negro skins. That’s all. And I find
your idiotic followers are all stirred up and waiting for some kind of a
miracle monger. What you have been preaching to them, you know best. Is
that all you want to know?”

The bishop hems and haws and fiddles with his stick, and then he says:

“Suh, will dish yeah prepa’shun _sho’ly_ do de wohk?” Doctor Kirby tells
him it will do the work all right.

And then the bishop, after beating around the bush some more, comes out
with his idea. Whether he expected there would be any Messiah come or
not, of course he knowed the doctor wasn’t him. But he is willing to
boost the doctor’s game as long as it boosts _his_ game. He wants to be in
on the deal. He wants part of the graft. He wants to get together with
the doctor on a plan before the doctor sees the niggers. And if the
doctor don’t want to keep on with the miracle end of it, the bishop
shows him how he could do him good with no miracle attachment. Fur he
has an awful holt on them niggers, and his say-so will sell thousands
and thousands of bottles. What he is looking fur jest now is his little
take-out.

That was his craftiness and his cunningness working in him. But all of
a sudden one of his crazy streaks come bulging to the surface. It come
with a wild, eager look in his eyes.

“Suh,” he cries out, all of a sudden, “ef yo’ kin make me white, fo’
Gawd sakes, do hit! Do hit! Ef yo’ does, I gwine ter bless yo’ all yo’
days!

“Yo’ don’ know--no one kin guess or comperhen’--what des bein’ white
would mean ter me! Lawd! Lawd!” he says, his voice soft-spoken, but more
eager than ever as he went on, and pleading something pitiful to hear,
“des think of all de Caucasian blood in me! Gawd knows de nights er my
youth I’se laid awake twell de dawn come red in de Eas’ a-cryin’ out ter
Him only fo’ ter be white! _Des ter be white_! Don’ min’ dem black, black
niggers dar--don’ think er _dem_--dey ain’t wuth nothin’ nor fitten fo’
no fate but what dey got--But me! What’s done kep’ me from gwine ter de
top but dat one thing: _I wasn’t white!_ Hit air too late now--too late
fo’ dem ambitions I done trifle with an’ shove behin’ me--hit’s too late
fo’ dat! But ef I was des ter git one li’l year o’ hit--_one li’l year o’
bein’ white!_--befo’ I died--”

And he went on like that, shaking and stuttering there in the road, like
a fit had struck him, crazy as a loon. But he got hold of himself enough
to quit talking, in a minute, and his cunning come back to him before
he was through trembling. Then the doctor says slow and even, but not
severe:

“You go back to your people now, bishop, and tell them they’ve made a
mistake about me. And if you can, undo the harm you’ve done with this
Messiah business. As far as this stuff of mine is concerned, there’s
none of it for you nor for any other negro. You tell them that. There’s
none of it been sold yet--and there never will be.”

Then we turned away and left him standing there in the road, still with
his hat off and his face working.

Walking back toward the little tavern the doctor says:

“Danny, this is the end of this game. These people down here and that
half-cracked, half-crooked old bishop have made me see a few things about
the Afro-American brother. It wasn’t a good scheme in the first place.
And this wasn’t the place to start it going, anyhow--I should have tried
the niggers in the big towns. But I’m out of it now, and I’m glad of
it. What we want to do is to get away from here to-morrow--go back to
Atlanta and fix up a scheme to rob some widows and orphans, or something
half-way respectable like that.”

Well, I drew a long breath. I was with Doctor Kirby in everything he
done, fur he was my friend, and I didn’t intend to quit him. But I was
glad we was out of this, and hadn’t sold none of that dope. We both
felt better because we hadn’t. All them millions we was going to
make--shucks! We didn’t neither one of us give a dern about them getting
away from us. All we wanted was jest to get away from there and not get
mixed up with no nigger problems any more. We eat supper, and we set
around a while, and we went to bed purty middling early, so as to get a
good start in the morning.

We got up early, but early as it was the devil had been up earlier in
that neighbourhood. About four o’clock that morning a white woman about
a half a mile from the village had been attacked by a nigger. They was
doubt as to whether she would live, but if she lived they wasn’t no
doubts she would always be more or less crazy. Fur besides everything
else, he had beat her insensible. And he had choked her nearly to death.
The country-side was up, with guns and pistols looking fur that nigger.
It wasn’t no trouble guessing what would happen to him when they ketched
him, neither.

“And,” says Doctor Kirby, when we hearn of it, “I hope to high heaven
they _do_ catch him!”

They wasn’t much doubt they would, either. They was already beating up
the woods and bushes and gangs was riding up and down the roads, and
every nigger’s house fur miles around was being searched and watched.

We soon seen we would have trouble getting hosses and a rig in the
village to take us to the railroad. Many of the hosses was being ridden
in the man-hunt. And most of the men who might have done the driving was
busy at that too. The hotel-keeper himself had left his place standing
wide open and went out. We didn’t get any breakfast neither.

“Danny,” says the doctor, “we’ll just put enough money to pay the bill
in an envelope on the register here, and strike out on shank’s ponies.
It’s only nine or ten miles to the railroad--we’ll walk.”

“But how about our stuff?” I asts him. We had two big cases full of
sample bottles of that dope, besides our suit cases.

“Hang the dope!” says the doctor, “I don’t ever want to see it or hear
of it again! We’ll leave it here. Put the things out of your suit case
into mine, and leave that here too. Sam can carry mine. I want to be on
the move.”

So we left, with Sam carrying the one suit case. It wasn’t nine in the
morning yet, and we was starting out purty empty fur a long walk.

“Sam,” says the doctor, as we was passing that there Big Bethel
church--and it showed up there silent and shabby in the morning, like a
old coloured man that knows a heap more’n he’s going to tell--“Sam, were
you at the meeting here last night?”

“Yass, suh!”

“I suppose it was a pretty tame affair after they found out their Elisha
wasn’t coming after all?”

Sam, he walled his eyes, and then he kind of chuckled.

“Well, suh,” he says, “I ‘spicions de mos’ on ‘em don’ know dat _yit!_”

The doctor asts him what he means.

It seems the bishop must of done some thinking after we left him in the
road or on his way back to that church. They had all begun to believe
that there Elishyah was on the way to ‘em, and the bishop’s credit was
more or less wrapped up with our being it. It was true he hadn’t started
that belief; but it was believed, and he didn’t dare to stop it now.
Fur, if he stopped it, they would all think he had fell down on his
prophetics, even although he hadn’t prophesied jest exactly us. He was
in a tight place, that bishop, but I bet you could always depend on him
to get out of it with his flock. So what he told them niggers at the
meeting last night was that he brung ‘em a message from Elishyah, Sam
says, the Elishyah that was to come. And the message was that the time
was not ripe fur him to reveal himself as Elishyah unto the eyes of all
men, fur they had been too much sinfulness and wickedness and walking
into the ways of evil, right amongst that very congregation, and
disobedience of the bishop, which was their guide. And he had sent ‘em
word, Elishyah had, that the bishop was his trusted servant, and into
the keeping of the bishop was give the power to deal with his people and
prepare them fur the great day to come. And the bishop would give the
word of his coming. He was a box, that bishop was, in spite of his crazy
streaks; and he had found a way to make himself stronger than ever with
his bunch out of the very kind of thing that would have spoiled most
people’s graft. They had had a big meeting till nearly morning, and the
power had hit ‘em strong. Sam told us all about it.

But the thing that seemed to interest the doctor, and made him frown,
was the idea that all them niggers round about there still had the idea
he was the feller that had been prophesied to come. All except Sam,
mebby. Sam had spells when he was real sensible, and other spells when
he was as bad as the believingest of them all.

It was a fine day, and really joyous to be a-walking. It would of been
a good deal joyouser if we had had some breakfast, but we figgered we
would stop somewheres at noon and lay in a good, square, country meal.

That wasn’t such a very thick settled country. But everybody seemed to
know about the manhunt that was going on, here, there, and everywhere.
People would come down to the road side as we passed, and gaze after us.
Or mebby ast us if we knowed whether he had been ketched yet. Women and
kids mostly, or old men, but now and then a younger man too. We noticed
they wasn’t no niggers to speak of that wasn’t busier’n all get out,
working at something or other, that day.

They is considerable woods in that country yet, though lots has been
cut off. But they was sometimes right long stretches where they would
be woods on both sides of the road, more or less thick, with underbrush
between the trees. We tramped along, each busy thinking his own
thoughts, and having a purty good time jest doing that without there
being no use of talking. I was thinking that I liked the doctor better
fur turning his back on all this game, jest when he might of made some
sort of a deal with the bishop and really made some money out of it
in the end. He never was so good a business man as he thought he was,
Doctor Kirby wasn’t. He always could make himself think he was. But when
it come right down to brass tacks he wasn’t. You give him a scheme that
would _talk_ well, the kind of a josh talk he liked to get off fur his own
enjoyment, and he would take up with it every time instead of one that
had more promise of money to it if it was worked harder. He was thinking
of the _talk_ more’n he was of the money, mostly; and he was always saying
something about art fur art’s sake, which was plumb foolishness, fur he
never painted no pictures. Well, he never got over being more or less of
a puzzle to me. But fur some reason or other this morning he seemed to
be in a better humour with himself, after we had walked a while, than I
had seen him in fur a long time.

We come to the top of one long hill, which it had made us sweat to
climb, and without saying nothing to each other we both stopped and took
off our hats and wiped our foreheads, and drawed long breaths, content
to stand there fur jest a minute or two and look around us. The road run
straight ahead, and dipped down, and then clumb up another hill about an
eighth of a mile in front of us. It made a little valley. Jest about
the middle, between the two hills, a crick meandered through the bottom
land. Woods growed along the crick, and along both sides of the road we
was travelling. Right nigh the crick they was another road come out
of the woods to the left-hand side, and switched into the road we was
travelling, and used the same bridge to cross the crick by. They was
three or four houses here and there, with chimbleys built up on the
outside of them, and blue smoke coming out. We stood and looked at the
sight before us and forgot all the troubles we had left behind, fur a
couple of minutes--it all looked so peaceful and quiet and homeyfied and
nice.

“Well,” says the doctor, after we had stood there a piece, “I guess we
better be moving on again, Danny.”

But jest as Sam, who was follering along behind with that suit case,
picks it up and puts it on his head agin, they come a sound, from away
off in the distance somewheres, that made him set it down quick. And we
all stops in our tracks and looks at each other.

It was the voice of a hound dog--not so awful loud, but clear and mellow
and tuneful, and carried to us on the wind. And then in a minute it come
agin, sharper and quicker. They yells like that when they have struck a
scent.

As we stood and looked at each other they come a crackle in the
underbrush, jest to the left of us. We turned our heads that-a-way, jest
as a nigger man give a leap to the top of a rail fence that separated
the road from the woods. He was going so fast that instead of climbing
that fence and balancing on the top and jumping off he jest simply
seemed to hit the top rail and bounce on over, like he had been throwed
out of the heart of the woods, and he fell sprawling over and over in
the road, right before our feet.

He was onto his feet in a second, and fur a minute he stood up straight
and looked at us--an ashes-coloured nigger, ragged and bleeding from the
underbrush, red-eyed, and with slavers trickling from his red lips, and
sobbing and gasping and panting fur breath. Under his brown skin, where
his shirt was torn open acrost his chest, you could see that nigger’s
heart a-beating.

But as he looked at us they come a sudden change acrost his face--he
must of seen the doctor before, and with a sob he throwed himself on his
knees in the road and clasped his hands and held ‘em out toward Doctor
Kirby.

“_Elishyah_! _Elishyah_!” he sings out, rocking of his body in a kind
of tune, “reveal yo’se’f, reveal yo’se’f an’ he’p me _now!_ Lawd Gawd
_Elishyah_, beckon fo’ a _Cha_‘iot, yo’ cha’iot of _fiah!_ Lif’ me, lif’
me--lif’ me away f’um hyah in er cha’iot o’ _fiah!_”

The doctor, he turned his head away, and I knowed the thought working
in him was the thought of that white woman that would always be an
idiot for life, if she lived. But his lips was dumb, and his one hand
stretched itself out toward that nigger in the road and made a wiping
motion, like he was trying fur to wipe the picture of him, and the
thought of him, off’n a slate forevermore.

Jest then, nearer and louder and sharper, and with an eager sound, like
they knowed they almost had him now, them hounds’ voices come ringing
through the woods, and with them come the mixedup shouts of men.

“_Run!_” yells Sam, waving of that suit case round his head, fur one
nigger will always try to help another no matter what he’s done. “Run
fo’ de branch--git yo’ foots in de worter an’ fling ‘em off de scent!”

He bounded down the hill, that red-eyed nigger, and left us standing
there. But before he reached the crick the whole man-hunt come busting
through the woods, the dogs a-straining at their straps. The men was all
on foot, with guns and pistols in their hands. They seen the nigger,
and they all let out a yell, and was after him. They ketched him at the
crick, and took him off along that road that turned off to the left.
I hearn later he was a member of Bishop Warren’s congregation, so they
hung him right in front of Big Bethel church.

We stood there on top of the hill and saw the chase and capture. Doctor
Kirby’s face was sweating worse than when we first clumb the hill.
He was thinking about that nigger that had pleaded with him. He was
thinking also of the woman. He was glad it hadn’t been up to him
personal right then and there to butt in and stop a lynching. He was
glad, fur with them two pictures in front of him he didn’t know what he
would of done.

“Thank heaven!” I hearn him say to himself. “Thank heaven that it wasn’t
_really_ in my power to choose!”



CHAPTER XVIII


Well, we had pork and greens fur dinner that day, with the best
corn-bread I ever eat anywheres, and buttermilk, and sweet potato pie.
We got ‘em at the house of a feller named Withers--Old Daddy Withers.
Which if they was ever a nicer old man than him, or a nicer old woman
than his wife, I never run acrost ‘em yet.

They lived all alone, them Witherses, with only a couple of niggers to
help them run their farm. After we eats our dinner and Sam gets his’n
out to the kitchen, we sets out in front of the house and gets to
talking with them, and gets real well acquainted. Which we soon found
out the secret of old Daddy Withers’s life--that there innocent-looking
old jigger was a poet. He was kind of proud of it and kind of shamed of
it both to oncet. The way it come out was when the doctor says one
of them quotations he is always getting off, and the old man he looks
pleased and says the rest of the piece it dropped out of straight
through.

Then they had a great time quoting it at each other, them two, and I
seen the doctor is good to loaf around there the rest of the day, like
as not. Purty soon the old lady begins to get mighty proud-looking over
something or other, and she leans over and whispers to the old man:

“Shall I bring it out, Lemuel?”

The old man, he shakes his head, no. But she slips into the house
anyhow, and fetches out a little book with a pale green cover to it, and
hands it to the doctor.

“Bless my soul,” says Doctor Kirby, looking at the old man, “you don’t
mean to say you write verse yourself?”

The old man, he gets red all over his face, and up into the roots of
his white hair, and down into his white beard, and makes believe he is a
little mad at the old lady fur showing him off that-a-way.

“Mother,” he says, “yo’ shouldn’t have done that!” They had had a boy
years before, and he had died, but he always called her mother the same
as if the boy was living. He goes into the house and gets his pipe,
and brings it out and lights it, acting like that book of poetry was
a mighty small matter to him. But he looks at Doctor Kirby out of
the corner of his eyes, and can’t keep from getting sort of eager and
trembly with his pipe; and I could see he was really anxious over what
the doctor was thinking of them poems he wrote. The doctor reads some of
‘em out loud.

Well, it was kind of home-made poetry, Old Daddy Withers’s was. It
wasn’t like no other poetry I ever struck. And I could tell the doctor
was thinking the same about it. It sounded somehow like it hadn’t been
jointed together right. You would keep listening fur it to rhyme, and
get all worked up watching and waiting fur it to, and make bets with
yourself whether it would rhyme or it wouldn’t. And then it ginerally
wouldn’t. I never hearn such poetry to get a person’s expectances all
worked up, and then go back on ‘em. But if you could of told what it was
all about, you wouldn’t of minded that so much. Not that you can tell
what most poetry is about, but you don’t care so long as it keeps
hopping along lively. What you want in poetry to make her sound good,
according to my way of thinking, is to make her jump lively, and
then stop with a bang on the rhymes. But Daddy Withers was so
independent-like he would jest natcherally try to force two words to
rhyme whether the Lord made ‘em fur mates or not--like as if you would
try to make a couple of kids kiss and make up by bumping their heads
together. They jest simply won’t do it. But Doctor Kirby, he let on like
he thought it was fine poetry, and he read them pieces over and over
agin, out loud, and the old man and the old woman was both mighty
tickled with the way he done it. He wouldn’t of had ‘em know fur
anything he didn’t believe it was the finest poetry ever wrote, Doctor
Kirby wouldn’t.

They was four little books of it altogether. Slim books that looked as
if they hadn’t had enough to eat, like a stray cat whose ribs is rubbing
together. It had cost Daddy Withers five hundred dollars apiece to get
‘em published. A feller in Boston charged him that much, he said. It
seems he would go along fur years, raking and scraping of his money
together, so as to get enough ahead to get out another book. Each time
he had his hopes the big newspapers would mebby pay some attention to
it, and he would get recognized.

“But they never did,” said the old man, kind of sad, “it always fell
flat.”

“Why, _father!_”--the old lady begins, and finishes by running back into
the house agin. She is out in a minute with a clipping from a newspaper
and hands it over to Doctor Kirby, as proud as a kid with copper-toed
boots. The doctor reads it all the way through, and then he hands it
back without saying a word. The old lady goes away to fiddle around
about the housework purty soon and the old man looks at the doctor and
says:

“Well, you see, don’t you?”

“Yes,” says the doctor, very gentle.

“I wouldn’t have _her_ know for the world,” says Daddy Withers. “_I_
know and _you_ know that newspaper piece is just simply poking fun at my
poetry, and making a fool of me, the whole way through. As soon as I
read it over careful I saw it wasn’t really praise, though there was a
minute or two I thought my recognition had come. But _she_ don’t know it
ain’t serious from start to finish. _She_ was all-mighty pleased when that
piece come out in print. And I don’t intend she ever shall know it ain’t
real praise.”

His wife was so proud when that piece come out in that New York paper,
he said, she cried over it. She said now she was glad they had been
doing without things fur years and years so they could get them little
books printed, one after the other, fur now fame was coming. But
sometimes, Daddy Withers says, he suspicions she really knows he has
been made a fool of, and is pertending not to see it, fur his sake, the
same as he is pertending fur _her_ sake. Well, they was a mighty nice
old couple, and the doctor done a heap of pertending fur both their
sakes--they wasn’t nothing else to do.

“How’d you come to get started at it?” he asts.

Daddy Withers says he don’t rightly know. Mebby, he says, it was living
there all his life and watching things growing--watching the cotton
grow, and the corn and getting acquainted with birds and animals and
trees and things. Helping of things to grow, he says, is a good way to
understand how God must feel about humans. For what you plant and help
to grow, he says, you are sure to get to caring a heap about. You can’t
help it. And that is the reason, he says, God can be depended on to pull
the human race through in the end, even if appearances do look to be
agin His doing it sometimes, fur He started it to growing in the first
place and that-a-way He got interested personal in it. And that is the
main idea, he says, he has all the time been trying to get into that
there poetry of his’n. But he reckons he ain’t got her in. Leastways,
he says, no one has never seen her there but the doctor and the old lady
and himself. Well, for my part, I never would of seen it there myself,
but when he said it out plain like that any one could of told what he
meant.

You hadn’t orter lay things up agin folks if the folks can’t help ‘em.
And I will say Daddy Withers was a fine old boy in spite of his poetry.
Which it never really done any harm, except being expensive to him, and
lots will drink that much up and never figger it an expense, but one
of the necessities of life. We went all over his place with him, and we
noticed around his house a lot of tin cans tacked up to posts and trees.
They was fur the birds to drink out of, and all the birds around there
had found out about it, and about Daddy Withers, and wasn’t scared of
him at all. He could get acquainted with animals, too, so that after a
long spell sometimes they would even let him handle them. But not if any
one was around. They was a crow he had made a pet of, used to hop around
in front of him, and try fur to talk to him. If he went to sleep in the
front yard whilst he was reading, that crow had a favourite trick of
stealing his spectacles off’n his nose and flying up to the ridgepole
of the house, and cawing at him. Once he had been setting out a row of
tomato plants very careful, and he got to the end of the row and turned
around, and that there crow had been hopping along behind very sollum,
pulling up each plant as he set it out. It acted like it had done
something mighty smart, and knowed it, that crow. So after that the old
man named him Satan, fur he said it was Satan’s trick to keep things
from growing. They was some blue and white pigeons wasn’t scared to come
and set on his shoulders; but you could see the old man really liked
that crow Satan better’n any of them.

Well, we hung around all afternoon listening to the old man talk, and
liking him better and better. First thing we knowed it was getting along
toward supper time. And nothing would do but we must stay to supper,
too. We was pinted toward a place on the railroad called Smithtown, but
when we found we couldn’t get a train from there till ten o’clock that
night anyhow, and it was only three miles away, we said we’d stay.

After supper we calculated we’d better move. But the old man wouldn’t
hear of us walking that three miles. So about eight o’clock he hitched
up a mule to a one-hoss wagon, and we jogged along.

They was a yaller moon sneaking up over the edge of the world when we
started. It was so low down in the sky yet that it threw long shadders
on the road, and they was thick and black ones, too. Because they was a
lot of trees alongside the road, and the road was narrow, we went ahead
mostly through the darkness, with here and there patches of moonlight
splashed onto the ground. Doctor Kirby and Old Man Withers was setting
on the seat, still gassing away about books and things, and I was
setting on the suit case in the wagon box right behind ‘em. Sam, he was
sometimes in the back of the wagon. He had been more’n half asleep all
afternoon, but now it was night he was waked up, the way niggers and
cats will do, and every once in a while he would get out behind and cut
a few capers in a moonlight patch, jest fur the enjoyment of it, and
then run and ketch up with the wagon and crawl in agin, fur it was going
purty slow.

The ground was sandy in spots, and I guess we made a purty good load fur
Beck, the old mule. She stopped, going up a little slope, after we had
went about a mile from the Witherses’. Sam says he’ll get out and walk,
fur the wheels was in purty deep, and it was hard going.

“Giddap, Beck!” says the old man.

But Beck, she won’t. She don’t stand like she is stuck, neither, but
like she senses danger somewheres about. A hoss might go ahead into
danger, but a mule is more careful of itself and never goes butting in
unless it feels sure they is a way out.

“Giddap,” says the old man agin.

But jest then the shadders on both sides of the road comes to life. They
wakes up, and moves all about us. It was done so sudden and quiet it was
half a minute before I seen it wasn’t shadders but about thirty men had
gathered all about us on every side. They had guns.

“Who are you? What d’ye want?” asts the old man, startled, as three or
four took care of the mule’s head very quick and quiet.

“Don’t be skeered, Daddy Withers,” says a drawly voice out of the dark;
“we ain’t goin’ to hurt _you_. We got a little matter o’ business to tend
to with them two fellers yo’ totin’ to town.”



CHAPTER XIX


THIRTY men with guns would be considerable of a proposition to buck
against, so we didn’t try it. They took us out of the wagon, and they
pinted us down the road, steering us fur a country schoolhouse which
was, I judged from their talk, about a quarter of a mile away. They took
us silent, fur after we found they didn’t answer no questions we quit
asking any. We jest walked along, and guessed what we was up against,
and why. Daddy Withers, he trailed along behind. They had tried to send
him along home, but he wouldn’t go. So they let him foller and paid no
more heed to him.

Sam, he kept a-talking and a-begging, and several men a-telling of him
to shut up. And him not a-doing it. Till finally one feller says very
disgusted-like:

“Boys, I’m going to turn this nigger loose.”

“We’ll want his evidence,” says another one.

“Evidence!” says the first one. “What’s the evidence of a scared nigger
worth?”

“I reckon that one this afternoon was considerable scared, when he give
us that evidence against himself--that is, if you call it evidence.”

“A nigger can give evidence against a nigger, and it’s all right,” says
another voice--which it come from a feller that had a-holt of my wrist
on the left-hand side of me--“but these are white men we are going to
try to-night. The case is too serious to take nigger evidence. Besides,
I reckon we got all the evidence any one could need. This nigger ain’t
charged with any crime himself, and my idea is that he ain’t to be
allowed to figure one way or the other in this thing.”

So they turned Sam loose. I never seen nor hearn tell of Sam since then.
They fired a couple of guns into the air as he started down the road,
jest fur fun, and mebby he is running yet.

The feller had been talking like he was a lawyer, so I asts him what
crime we was charged with. But he didn’t answer me. And jest then we
gets in sight of that schoolhouse.

It set on top of a little hill, partially in the moonlight, with a few
sad-looking pine trees scattered around it, and the fence in front
broke down. Even after night you could see it was a shabby-looking little
place.

Old Daddy Withers tied his mule to the broken down fence. Somebody
busted the front door down. Somebody else lighted matches. The first
thing I knowed, we was all inside, and four or five dirty little coal
oil lamps, with tin reflectors to ‘em, which I s’pose was used ordinary
fur school exhibitions, was being lighted.

We was waltzed up onto the teacher’s platform, Doctor Kirby and me, and
set down in chairs there, with two men to each of us, and then a tall,
rawboned feller stalks up to the teacher’s desk, and raps on it with the
butt end of a pistol, and says:

“Gentlemen, this meeting will come to order.”

Which they was orderly enough before that, but they all took off their
hats when he rapped, like in a court room or a church, and most of ‘em
set down.

They set down in the school kids’ seats, or on top of the desks, and
their legs stuck out into the aisles, and they looked uncomfortable and
awkward. But they looked earnest and they looked sollum, too, and they
wasn’t no joking nor skylarking going on, nor no kind of rowdyness,
neither. These here men wasn’t toughs, by any manner of means, but
the most part of ‘em respectable farmers. They had a look of meaning
business.

“Gentlemen,” says the feller who had rapped, “who will you have for your
chairman?”

“I reckon you’ll do, Will,” says another feller to the raw-boned man,
which seemed to satisfy him. But he made ‘em vote on it before he took
office.

“Now then,” says Will, “the accused must have counsel.”

“Will,” says another feller, very hasty, “what’s the use of all this
fuss an’ feathers? You know as well as I do there’s nothing legal about
this. It’s only necessary. For my part--”

“Buck Hightower,” says Will, pounding on the desk, “you will please come
to order.” Which Buck done it.

“Now,” says the chairman, turning toward Doctor Kirby, who had been
setting there looking thoughtful from one man to another, like he was
sizing each one up, “now I must explain to the chief defendant that we
don’t intend to lynch him.”

He stopped a second on that word __lynch__ as if to let it soak in. The
doctor, he bowed toward him very cool and ceremonious, and says, mocking
of him:

“You reassure me, Mister--Mister--What is your name?” He said it in a
way that would of made a saint mad.

“My name ain’t any difference,” says Will, trying not to show he was
nettled.

“You are quite right,” says the doctor, looking Will up and down from
head to foot, very slow and insulting, “it’s of no consequence in the
world.”

Will, he flushed up, but he makes himself steady and cool, and he goes
on with his little speech: “There is to be no lynching here to-night.
There is to be a trial, and, if necessary, an execution.”

“Would it be asking too much,” says the doctor very polite, “if I were
to inquire who is to be tried, and before what court, and upon what
charge?”

There was a clearing of throats and a shuffling of feet fur a minute.
One old deaf feller, with a red nose, who had his hand behind his ear
and was leaning forward so as not to miss a breath of what any one said,
ast his neighbour in a loud whisper, “How?” Then an undersized little
feller, who wasn’t a farmer by his clothes, got up and moved toward the
platform. He had a bulging-out forehead, and thin lips, and a quick,
nervous way about him:

“You are to be tried,” he says to the doctor, speaking in a kind of
shrill sing-song that cut your nerves in that room full of bottled-up
excitement like a locust on a hot day. “You are to be tried before this
self-constituted court of Caucasian citizens--Anglo-Saxons, sir, every
man of them, whose forbears were at Runnymede! The charge against you
is stirring up the negroes of this community to the point of revolt.
You are accused, sir, of representing yourself to them as some kind of
a Moses. You are arraigned here for endangering the peace of the county
and the supremacy of the Caucasian race by inspiring in the negroes the
hope of equality.”

Old Daddy Withers had been setting back by the door. I seen him get
up and slip out. It didn’t look to me to be any place fur a gentle old
poet. While that little feller was making that charge you could feel the
air getting tingly, like it does before a rain storm.

[Illustration: 0297]

Some fellers started to clap their hands like at a political rally and
to say, “Go it, Billy!” “That’s right, Harden!” Which I found out later
Billy Harden was in the state legislature, and quite a speaker, and
knowed it. Will, the chairman, he pounded down the applause, and then he
says to the doctor, pointing to Billy Harden:

“No man shall say of us that we did not give you a fair trial and a
square deal. I’m goin’ to appoint this gentleman as your counsel, and
I’m goin’ to give you a reasonable time to talk with him in private and
prepare your case. He is the ablest lawyer in southwest Georgia and the
brightest son of Watson County.”

The doctor looks kind of lazy and Bill Harden, and back agin at Will,
the chairman, and smiles out of the corner of his mouth. Then he says,
sort of taking in the rest of the crowd with his remark, like them two
standing there paying each other compliments wasn’t nothing but a joke:

“I hope neither of you will take it too much to heart if I’m not
impressed by your sense of justice--or your friend’s ability.”

“Then,” said Will, “I take it that you intend to act as your own
counsel?”

“You may take it,” says the doctor, rousing of himself up, “you may take
it--from me--that I refuse to recognize you and your crowd as a court of
any kind; that I know nothing of the silly accusations against me;
that I find no reason at all why I should take the trouble of making a
defence before an armed mob that can only mean one of two things.”

“One of two things?” says Will.

“Yes,” says the doctor, very quiet, but raising his voice a little and
looking him hard in the eyes. “You and your gang can mean only one of
two things. Either a bad joke, or else--”

And he stopped a second, leaning forward in his chair, with the look of
half raising out of it, so as to bring out the word very decided--

“_MURDER!_”

The way he done it left that there word hanging in the room, so you
could almost see it and almost feel it there, like it was a thing that
had to be faced and looked at and took into account. They all felt it
that-a-way, too; fur they wasn’t a sound fur a minute. Then Will says:

“We don’t plan murder, and you’ll find this ain’t a joke. And since you
refuse to accept counsel--”

Jest then Buck Hightower interrupts him by yelling out, “I make a motion
Billy Harden be prosecuting attorney, then. Let’s hurry this thing
along!” And several started to applaud, and call fur Billy Harden to
prosecute. But Will, he pounded down the applause agin, and says:

“I was about to suggest that Mr. Harden might be prevailed upon to
accept that task.”

“Yes,” says the doctor, very gentle and easy. “Quite so! I fancied
myself that Mr. Harden came along with the idea of making a speech
either for or against.” And he grinned at Billy Harden in a way that
seemed to make him wild, though he tried not to show it. Somehow the
doctor seemed to be all keyed up, instead of scared, like a feller
that’s had jest enough to drink to give him a fighting edge.

“Mr. Chairman,” says Billy Harden, flushing up and stuttering jest a
little, “I b-beg leave to d-d-decline.”

“What,” says the doctor, sort of playing with Billy with his eyes and
grin, and turning like to let the whole crowd in on the joke, “_decline_?
The eminent gentleman declines! And he is going to sit down, too, with
all that speech bottled up in him! O Demosthenes!” he says, “you have
lost your pebble in front of all Greece.”

Several grinned at Billy Harden as he set down, and three or four
laughed outright. I guess about half of them there knowed him fur a wind
bag, and some wasn’t sorry to see him joshed. But I seen what the doctor
was trying to do. He knowed he was in an awful tight place, and he was
feeling that crowd’s pulse, so to speak. He had been talking to crowds
fur twenty years, and he knowed the kind of sudden turns they will take,
and how to take advantage of ‘em. He was planning and figgering in his
mind all the time jest what side to ketch ‘em on, and how to split up
the one, solid crowd-mind into different minds. But the little bit of
a laugh he turned against Billy Harden was only on the surface, like a
straw floating on a whirlpool. These men was here fur business.

Buck Hightower jumps up and says:

“Will, I’m getting tired of this court foolishness. The question is,
Does this man come into this county and do what he has done and get out
again? We know all about him. He sneaked in here and gave out he was
here to turn the niggers white--that he was some kind of a new-fangled
Jesus sent especially to niggers, which is blasphemy in itself--and
he’s got ‘em stirred up. They’re boilin’ and festerin’ with notions of
equality till we’re lucky if we don’t have to lynch a dozen of ‘em,
like they did in Atlanta last summer, to get ‘em back into their places
again. Do we save ourselves more trouble by stringing him up as a
warning to the negroes? Or do we invite trouble by turning him loose?
Which? All it needs is a vote.”

And he set down agin. You could see he had made a hit with the boys.
They was a kind of a growl rolled around the room. The feelings in that
place was getting stronger and stronger. I was scared, but trying not to
show it. My fingers kept feeling around in my pocket fur something that
wasn’t there. But my brain couldn’t remember what my fingers was feeling
fur. Then it come on me sudden it was a buckeye I picked up in the
woods in Indiany one day, and I had lost it. I ain’t superstitious about
buckeyes or horse-shoes, but remembering I had lost it somehow made me
feel worse. But Doctor Kirby had a good holt on himself; his face was
a bit redder’n usual, and his eyes was sparkling, and he was both eager
and watchful. When Buck Hightower sets down the chairman clears his
throat like he is going to speak. But--

“Just a moment,” says Doctor Kirby, getting on his feet, and taking
a step toward the chairman. And the way he stopped and stood made
everybody look at him. Then he went on:

“Once more,” he says, “I call the attention of every man present to the
fact that what the last speaker proposes is--”

And then he let ‘em have that word agin, full in their faces, to think
about--

“_Murder!_ Merely murder.”

He was bound they shouldn’t get away from that word and what it stood
fur. And every man there _did_ think, too, fur they was another little
pause. And not one of ‘em looked at another one fur a minute. Doctor
Kirby leaned forward from the platform, running his eyes over the crowd,
and jest natcherally shoved that word into the room so hard with his
mind that every mind there had to take it in.

But as he held ‘em to it they come a bang from one of the windows. It
broke the charm. Fur everybody jumped. I jumped myself. When the end
of the world comes and the earth busts in the middle, it won’t sound no
louder than that bang did. It was a wooden shutter. The wind was rising
outside, and it flew open and whacked agin’ the building.

Then a big, heavy-set man that hadn’t spoke before riz up from one of
the hind seats, like he had heard a dare to fight, and walked slowly
down toward the front. He had a red face, which was considerable
pock-marked, and very deep-set eyes, and a deep voice.

“Since when,” he says, taking up his stand a dozen feet or so in front
of the doctor, “since when has any civilization refused to commit murder
when murder was necessary for its protection?”

One of the top glasses of that window was out, and with the shutter open
they come a breeze through that fluttered some strips of dirty-coloured
papers, fly-specked and dusty and spider-webbed, that hung on strings
acrost the room, jest below the ceiling. I guess they had been left over
from some Christmas doings.

“My friend,” said the pock-marked man to the doctor--and the funny thing
about it was he didn’t talk unfriendly when he said it--“the word you
insist on is just a _word_, like any other word.”

They was a spider rousted out of his web by that disturbance among the
strings and papers. He started down from above on jest one string of
web, seemingly spinning part of it out of himself as he come, the way
they do. I couldn’t keep my eyes off’n him.

“Murder,” says the doctor, “is a thing.”

“It is a _word_,” says the other man, “_For_ a thing. For a thing which
sometimes seems necessary. Lynching, war, execution, murder--they are
all words for different ways of wiping out human life. Killing sometimes
seems wrong, and sometimes right. But right or wrong, and with one word
or another tacked to it, it is _done_ when a community wants to get rid of
something dangerous to it.”

That there spider was a squat, ugly-looking devil, hunched up on his
string amongst all his crooked legs. The wind would come in little
puffs, and swing him a little way toward the doctor’s head, and then
toward the pock-marked man’s head, back and forth and back and forth,
between them two as they spoke. It looked to me like he was listening to
what they said and waiting fur something.

“Murder,” says the doctor, “is murder--illegal killing--and you can’t
make anything else out of it, or talk anything else into it.”

It come to me all to oncet that that ugly spider was swinging back and
forth like the pendulum on a clock, and marking time. I wondered how
much time they was left in the world.

“It would be none the less a murder,” said the pock-marked man, “if you
were to be hanged after a trial in some county court. Society had been
obliged to deny the privilege of committing murder to the individual and
reserve it for the community. If our communal sense says you should die,
the thing is neither better nor worse than if a sheriff hanged you.”

“I am not to be hanged by a sheriff,” says the doctor, very cool and
steady, “because I have committed no crime. I am not to be killed by you
because you dare not, in spite of all you say, outrage the law to that
extent.”

And they looked each other in the eyes so long and hard that every one
else in the schoolhouse held their breath.

“_Dare_ not?” says the pock-marked man. And he reached forward slow and
took that spider in his hand, and crushed it there, and wiped his hand
along his pants leg. “Dare not? _Yes, but we dare_. The only question for
us men here is whether we dare to let you go free.”

“Your defence of lynching,” says Doctor Kirby, “shows that you, at
least, are a man who can think. Tell me what I am accused of?”

And then the trial begun in earnest.



CHAPTER XX


The doctor acted as his own lawyer, and the pock-marked man, whose name
was Grimes, as the lawyer agin us. You could see that crowd had made up
its mind before-hand, and was only giving us what they called a trial
to satisfy their own conscience. But the fight was betwixt Grimes and
Doctor Kirby the hull way through.

One witness was a feller that had been in the hotel at Cottonville the
night we struck that place. We had drunk some of his licker.

“This man admitted himself that he was here to turn the niggers white,”
 said the witness.

Doctor Kirby had told ‘em what kind of medicine he was selling. We both
remembered it. We both had to admit it.

The next witness was the feller that run the tavern at Bairdstown. He
had with him, fur proof, a bottle of the stuff we had brought with us.
He told how we had went away and left it there that very morning.

Another witness told of seeing the doctor talking in the road to that
there nigger bishop. Which any one could of seen it easy enough, fur
they wasn’t nothing secret about it. We had met him by accident. But you
could see it made agin us.

Another witness says he lives not fur from that Big Bethel church.
He says he has noticed the niggers was worked up about something fur
several days. They are keeping the cause of it secret. He went over to
Big Bethel church the night before, he said, and he listened outside one
of the windows to find out what kind of doctrine that crazy bishop was
preaching to them. They was all so worked up, and the power was with
‘em so strong, and they was so excited they wouldn’t of hearn an army
marching by. He had hearn the bishop deliver a message to his flock from
the Messiah. He had seen him go wild, afterward, and preach an equality
sermon. That was the lying message the old bishop had took to ‘em, and
that Sam had told us about. But how was this feller to know it was a
lie? He believed in it, and he told it in a straight-ahead way that
would make any one see he was telling the truth as he thought it to be.

Then they was six other witnesses. All had been in the gang that lynched
the nigger that day. That nigger had confessed his crime before he was
lynched. He had told how the niggers had been expecting of a Messiah fur
several days, and how the doctor was him. He had died a-preaching and
a-prophesying and thinking to the last minute maybe he was going to get
took up in a chariot of fire.

Things kept looking worse and worse fur us. They had the story as the
niggers thought it to be. They thought the doctor had deliberately
represented himself as such, instead of which the doctor had refused to
be represented as that there Messiah. More than that, he had never
sold a bottle of that medicine. He had flung the idea of selling it way
behind him jest as soon as he seen what the situation really was in the
black counties. He had even despised himself fur going into it. But the
looks of things was all the other way.

Then the doctor give his own testimony.

“Gentlemen,” he says, “it is true that I came down here to try out that
stuff in the bottle there, and see if a market could be worked up
for it. It is also true that, after I came here and discovered what
conditions were, I decided not to sell the stuff. I didn’t sell any.
About this Messiah business I know very little more than you do. The
situation was created, and I blundered into it. I sent the negroes word
that I was not the person they expected. The bishop lied to them. That
is my whole story.”

But they didn’t believe him. Fur it was jest what he would of said if he
had been guilty, as they thought him. And then Grimes gets up and says:

“Gentlemen, I demand for this prisoner the penalty of death.

“He has lent himself to a situation calculated to disturb in this county
the peaceful domination of the black race by the white.

“He is a Northern man. But that is not against him. If this were a case
where leniency were possible, it should count for him, as indicating an
ignorance of the gravity of conditions which confront us here, every day
and all the time. If he were my own brother, I would still demand his
death.

“Lest he should think my attitude dictated by any lingering sectional
prejudice, I may tell him what you all know--you people among whom I
have lived for thirty years--that I am a Northern man myself.

“The negro who was lynched to-day might never have committed the crime
he did had not the wild, disturbing dream of equality been stirring in
his brain. Every speech, every look, every action which encourages that
idea is a crime. In this county, where the blacks outnumber us, we must
either rule as masters or be submerged.

“This man is still believed by the negroes to possess some miraculous
power. He is therefore doubly dangerous. As a sharp warning to them
he must die. His death will do more toward ending the trouble he has
prepared than the death of a dozen negroes.

“And as God is my witness, I speak and act not through passion, but from
the dictates of conscience.”

He meant it, Grimes did. And when he set down they was a hush. And then
Will, the chairman, begun to call the roll.

I never been much of a person to have bad dreams or nightmares or things
like that. But ever since that night in that schoolhouse, if I do have a
nightmare, it takes the shape of that roll being called. Every word was
like a spade grating and gritting in damp gravel when a grave is dug. It
sounded so to me.

“Samuel Palmour, how do you vote?” that chairman would say.

Samuel Palmour, or whoever it was, would hist himself to his feet, and
he would say something like this:

“Death.”

He wouldn’t say it joyous. He wouldn’t say it mad. He would be pale when
he said it, mebby--and mebby trembling. But he would say it like it was
a duty he had to do, that couldn’t be got out of. That there trial had
lasted so long they wasn’t hot blood left in nobody jest then--only cold
blood, and determination and duty and principle.

“Buck Hightower,” says the chairman, “how do you vote?”

“Death,” says Buck; “death for the man. But say, can’t we jest _lick_ the
kid and turn him loose?”

And so it went, up one side the room and down the other. Grimes had
showed ‘em all their duty. Not but what they had intended to do it
before Grimes spoke. But he had put it in such a way they seen it was
something with even _more_ principle to it than they had thought it was
before.

“Billy Harden,” says the chairman, “how do you vote?” Billy was the last
of the bunch. And most had voted fur death. Billy, he opened his mouth
and he squared himself away to orate some. But jest as he done so, the
door opened and Old Daddy Withers stepped in. He had been gone so long
I had plumb forgot him. Right behind him was a tall, spare feller, with
black eyes and straight iron-gray hair.

“I vote,” says Billy Harden, beginning of his speech, “I vote for death.
The reason upon which I base--”

But Doctor Kirby riz up and interrupted him.

“You are going to kill me,” he said. He was pale but he was quiet, and
he spoke as calm and steady as he ever done in his life. “You are going
to kill me like the crowd of sneaking cowards that you are. And you _are_
such cowards that you’ve talked two hours about it, instead of doing it.
And I’ll tell you why you’ve talked so much: because no _one_ of you alone
would dare to do it, and every man of you in the end wants to go away
thinking that the other fellow had the biggest share in it. And no _one_
of you will fire the gun or pull the rope--you’ll do it _all together_, in
a crowd, because each one will want to tell himself he only touched the
rope, or that _his gun_ missed.

“I know you, by God!” he shouted, flushing up into a passion--and it
brought blood into their faces, too--“I know you right down to your
roots, better than you know yourselves.”

He was losing hold of himself, and roaring like a bull and flinging out
taunts that made ‘em squirm. If he wanted the thing over quick, he
was taking jest the way to warm ‘em up to it. But I don’t think he was
figgering on anything then, or had any plan up his sleeve. He had made
up his mind he was going to die, and he was so mad because he couldn’t
get in one good lick first that he was nigh crazy. I looked to see him
lose all sense in a minute, and rush amongst them guns and end it in a
whirl.

But jest as I figgered he was on his tiptoes fur that, and was getting
up my own sand, he throwed a look my way. And something sobered him. He
stood there digging his finger nails into the palms of his hands fur a
minute, to get himself back. And when he spoke he was sort of husky.

“That boy there,” he says. And then he stops and kind of chokes up. And
in a minute he was begging fur me. He tells ‘em I wasn’t mixed up in
nothing. He wouldn’t of done it fur himself, but he begged fur me.
Nobody had paid much attention to me from the first, except Buck
Hightower had put in a good word fur me. But somehow the doctor had got
the crowd listening to him agin, and they all looked at me. It got next
to me. I seen by the way they was looking, and I felt it in the air,
that they was going to let me off.

But Doctor Kirby, he had always been my friend. It made me sore fur to
see him thinking I wasn’t with him. So I says:

“You better can that line of talk. They don’t get you without they get
me, too. You orter know I ain’t a quitter. You give me a pain.”

And the doctor and me stood and looked at each other fur a minute. He
grinned at me, and all of a sudden we was neither one of us much giving
a whoop, fur it had come to us both at oncet what awful good friends we
was with each other.

But jest then they come a slow, easy-going sort of a voice from the
back part of the room. That feller that had come in along with Old Daddy
Withers come sauntering down the middle aisle, fumbling in his coat
pocket, and speaking as he come.

“I’ve been hearing a great deal of talk about killing people in the last
few minutes,” he says.

Everybody rubbered at him.



CHAPTER XXI


There was something sort of careless in his voice, like he had jest
dropped in to see a show, and it had come to him sudden that he would
enjoy himself fur a minute or two taking part in it. But he wasn’t going
to get _too_ worked up about it, either, fur the show might end by making
him tired, after all.

As he come down the aisle fumbling in his coat, he stopped and begun to
slap all his pockets. Then his face cleared, and he dived into a
vest pocket. Everybody looked like they thought he was going to pull
something important out of it. But he didn’t. All he pulled out was jest
one of these here little ordinary red books of cigarette papers. Then
he dived fur some loose tobacco, and begun to roll one. I noticed his
fingers was long and white and slim and quick. But not excited fingers;
only the kind that seems to say as much as talking says.

He licked his cigarette, and then he sauntered ahead, looking up. As
he looked up the light fell full on his face fur the first time. He had
high cheek bones and iron-gray hair which he wore rather long, and very
black eyes. As he lifted his head and looked close at Doctor Kirby, a
change went over both their faces. Doctor Kirby’s mouth opened like he
was going to speak. So did the other feller’s. One side of his mouth
twitched into something that was too surprised to be a grin, and one of
his black eyebrows lifted itself up at the same time. But neither him
nor Doctor Kirby spoke.

He stuck his cigarette into his mouth and turned sideways from Doctor
Kirby, like he hadn’t noticed him pertic’ler. And he turns to the
chairman.

“Will,” he says. And everybody listens. You could see they all knowed
him, and that they all respected him too, by the way they was waiting
to hear what he would say to Will. But they was all impatient and eager,
too, and they wouldn’t wait very long, although now they was hushing
each other and leaning forward.

“Will,” he says, very polite and quiet, “can I trouble you for a match?”

And everybody let go their breath. Some with a snort, like they knowed
they was being trifled with, and it made ‘em sore. His eyebrows goes up
agin, like it was awful impolite in folks to snort that-away, and he is
surprised to hear it. And Will, he digs fur a match and finds her and
passes her over. He lights his cigarette, and he draws a good inhale,
and he blows the smoke out like it done him a heap of good. He sees
something so interesting in that little cloud of smoke that everybody
else looks at it, too.

“Do I understand,” he says, “that some one is going to lynch some one,
or something of that sort?”

“That’s about the size of it, colonel,” says Will.

“Um!” he says, “What for?”

Then everybody starts to talk all at once, half of them jumping to their
feet, and making a perfect hullabaloo of explanations you couldn’t get
no sense out of. In the midst of which the colonel takes a chair and
sets down and crosses one leg over the other, swinging the loose foot
and smiling very patient. Which Will remembers he is chairman of that
meeting and pounds fur order.

“Thank you, Will,” says the colonel, like getting order was a personal
favour to him. Then Billy Harden gets the floor, and squares away fur a
longwinded speech telling why. But Buck Hightower jumps up impatient and
says:

“We’ve been through all that, Billy. That man there has been tried and
found guilty, colonel, and there’s only one thing to do--string him up.”

“Buck, _I_ wouldn’t,” says the colonel, very mild.

But that there man Grimes gets up very sober and steady and says:

“Colonel, you don’t understand.” And he tells him the hull thing as
he believed it to be--why they has voted the doctor must die, the room
warming up agin as he talks, and the colonel listening very interested.
But you could see by the looks of him that colonel wouldn’t never be
interested so much in anything but himself, and his own way of doing
things. In a way he was like a feller that enjoys having one part
of himself stand aside and watch the play-actor game another part of
himself is acting out.

“Grimes,” he says, when the pock-marked man finishes, “I wouldn’t. I
really wouldn’t.”

“Colonel,” says Grimes, showing his knowledge that they are all standing
solid behind him, “_we will!_”

“Ah,” says the colonel, his eyebrows going up, and his face lighting
up like he is really beginning to enjoy himself and is glad he come,
“indeed!”

“Yes,” says Grimes, “_we will!_”

“But not,” says the colonel, “before we have talked the thing over a
bit, I hope?”

“There’s been too much talk here now,” yells Buck Hightower, “talk,
talk, till, by God, I’m sick of it! Where’s that _rope_?”

“But, listen to him--listen to the colonel!” some one else sings
out. And then they was another hullabaloo, some yelling “no!” And the
colonel, very patient, rolls himself another smoke and lights it from
the butt of the first one. But finally they quiets down enough so Will
can put it to a vote. Which vote goes fur the colonel to speak.

“Boys,” he begins very quiet, “I wouldn’t lynch this man. In the first
place it will look bad in the newspapers, and--”

“The newspapers be d---d!” says some one.

“And in the second place,” goes on the colonel, “it would be against the
law, and--”

“The law be d----d!” says Buck Hightower.

“There’s a higher law!” says Grimes.

“Against the law,” says the colonel, rising up and throwing away his
cigarette, and getting interested.

“I know how you feel about all this negro business. And I feel the same
way. We all know that we must be the negros’ masters. Grimes there found
that out when he came South, and the idea pleased him so he hasn’t been
able to talk about anything else since. Grimes has turned into what the
Northern newspapers think a typical Southerner is.

“Boys, this thing of lynching gets to be a habit. There’s been a negro
lynched to-day. He’s the third in this county in five years. They all
needed killing. If the thing stopped there I wouldn’t care so much. But
the habit of illegal killing grows when it gets started.

“It’s grown on you. You’re fixing to lynch your first white man now. If
you do, you’ll lynch another easier. You’ll lynch one for murder and the
next for stealing hogs and the next because he’s unpopular and the next
because he happens to dun you for a debt. And in five years life will
be as cheap in Watson County as it is in a New York slum where they feed
immigrants to the factories. You’ll all be toting guns and grudges and
trying to lynch each other.

“The place to stop the thing is where it starts. You can’t have it both
ways--you’ve got to stand pat on the law, or else see the law spit on
right and left, in the end, and _nobody_ safe. It’s either law or--”

“But,” says Grimes, “there’s a higher law than that on the statute
books. There’s--”

“There’s a lot of flub-dub,” says the colonel, “about higher laws and
unwritten laws. But we’ve got high enough law written if we live up to
it. There’s--”

“Colonel Tom Buckner,” says Buck Hightower, “what kind of law was it
when you shot Ed Howard fifteen years ago? What--”

“You’re out of order,” says the chairman, “Colonel Buckner has the
floor. And I’ll remind you, Buck Hightower, that, on the occasion you
drag in, Colonel Buckner didn’t do any talking about higher laws or
unwritten laws. He sent word to the sheriff to come and get him if he
dared.”

“Boys,” says the colonel, “I’m preaching you higher doctrine than I’ve
lived by, and I’ve made no claim to be better or more moral than any of
you. I’m not. I’m in the same boat with all of you, and I tell you
it’s up to _all_ of us to stop lynchings in this county--to set our faces
against it. I tell you--”

“Is that all you’ve got to say to us, colonel?”

The question come out of a group that had drawed nearer together
whilst the colonel was talking. They was tired of listening to talk and
arguments, and showed it.

The colonel stopped speaking short when they flung that question at him.
His face changed. He turned serious all over. And he let loose jest one
word:

“_No_!”

Not very loud, but with a ring in it that sounded like danger. And he
got ‘em waiting agin, and hanging on his words.

“No!” he repeats, louder, “not all. I have this to say to you--”

And he paused agin, pointing one long white finger at the crowd--

“_If you lynch this man you must kill me first!_”

I couldn’t get away from thinking, as he stood there making them take
that in, that they was something like a play-actor about him. But he was
in earnest, and he would play it to the end, fur he liked the feelings
it made circulate through his frame. And they saw he was in earnest.

“You’ll lynch him, will you?” he says, a kind of passion getting into
his voice fur the first time, and his eyes glittering. “You think you
will? Well, you _won’t_!

“You won’t because _I_ say _not_. Do you hear? I came here to-night to
save him.

“You might string _him_ up and not be called to account for it. But how
about _me_?”

He took a step forward, and, looking from face to face with a dare in
his eyes, he went on:

“Is there a man among you fool enough to think you could kill Tom
Buckner and not pay for it?”

He let ‘em all think of that for jest another minute before he spoke
agin. His face was as white as a piece of paper, and his nostrils was
working, but everything else about him was quiet. He looked the master
of them all as he stood there, Colonel Tom Buckner did--straight and
splendid and keen. And they felt the danger in him, and they felt jest
how fur he would go, now he was started.

“You didn’t want to listen to me a bit ago,” he said. “Now you must.
Listen and choose. You can’t kill that man unless you kill me too.

“_Try it, if you think you can!_”

He reached over and took from the teacher’s desk the sheet of paper Will
had used to check off the name of each man and how he voted. He held it
up in front of him and every man looked at it.

“You know me,” he says. “You know I do not break my word. And I promise
you that unless you do kill me here tonight--yes, as God is my witness,
I _threaten_ you--I will spend every dollar I own and every atom of
influence I possess to bring each one of you to justice for that man’s
murder.”

They knowed, that crowd did, that killing a man like Colonel Buckner--a
leader and a big man in that part of the state--was a different
proposition from killing a stranger like Doctor Kirby. The sense of what
it would mean to kill Colonel Buckner was sinking into ‘em, and showing
on their faces. And no one could look at him standing there, with his
determination blazing out of him, and not understand that unless they
did kill him as well as Doctor Kirby he’d do jest what he said.

“I told you,” he said, not raising his voice, but dropping it, and
making it somehow come creeping nearer to every one by doing that, “I
told you the first white man you lynched would lead to other lynchings.
Let me show you what you’re up against to-night.

“Kill the man and the boy here, and you must kill me. Kill me, and you
must kill Old Man Withers, too.”

Every one turned toward the door as he mentioned Old Man Withers. He had
never been very far into the room.

“Oh, he’s gone,” said Colonel Tom, as they turned toward the door, and
then looked at each other. “Gone home. Gone home with the name of every
man present. Don’t you see you’d have to kill Old Man Withers too, if
you killed me? And then, _his wife_! And then--how many more?

“Do you see it widen--that pool of blood? Do you see it spread and
spread?”

He looked down at the floor, like he really seen it there. He had ‘em
going now. They showed it.

“If you shed one drop,” he went on, “you must shed more. Can’t you see
it--widening and deepening, widening and deepening, till you’re wading
knee deep in it--till it climbs to your waists--till it climbs to your
throats and chokes you?”

It was a horrible idea, the way he played that there pool of blood and
he shuddered like he felt it climbing up himself. And they felt it. A
few men can’t kill a hull, dern county and get away with it. The way he
put it that’s what they was up against.

“Now,” says Colonel Tom, “what man among you wants to start it?”

Nobody moved. He waited a minute. Still nobody moved. They all looked
at him. It was awful plain jest where they would have to begin. It was
awful plain jest what it would all end up in. And I guess when they
looked at him standing there, so fine and straight and splendid, it jest
seemed plumb unpossible to make a move. There was a spirit in him that
couldn’t be killed. Doctor Kirby said afterward that was what come of
being real “quality,” which was what Colonel Tom was--it was that in him
that licked ‘em. It was the best part of their own selves, and the best
part of their own country, speaking out of him to them, that done it.
Mebby so. Anyhow, after a minute more of that strain, a feller by the
door picks up his gun out of the corner with a scrape, and hists it to
his shoulder and walks out. And then Colonel Tom says to Will, with his
eyebrow going up, and that one-sided grin coming onto his face agin:

“Will, perhaps a motion to adjourn would be in order?”



CHAPTER XXII


So many different kinds of feeling had been chasing around inside of me
that I had numb spots in my emotional ornaments and intellectual organs.
The room cleared out of everybody but Doctor Kirby and Colonel Tom and
me. But the sound of the crowd going into the road, and their footsteps
dying away, and then after that their voices quitting, all made but very
little sense to me. I could scarcely realize that the danger was over.

I hadn’t been paying much attention to Doctor Kirby while the colonel
was making that grandstand play of his’n, and getting away with it.
Doctor Kirby was setting in his chair with his head sort of sunk on his
chest. I guess he was having a hard time himself to realize that all
the danger was past. But mebby it wasn’t that--he looked like he might
really of forgot where he was fur a minute, and might be thinking of
something that had happened a long time ago.

The colonel was leaning up agin the teacher’s desk, smoking and looking
at Doctor Kirby. Doctor Kirby turns around toward the colonel.

“You have saved my life,” he says, getting up out of his chair, like
he had a notion to step over and thank him fur it, but was somehow not
quite sure how that would be took.

The colonel looks at him silent fur a second, and then he says, without
smiling:

“Do you flatter yourself it was because I think it worth anything?”

The doctor don’t answer, and then the colonel says:

“Has it occurred to you that I may have saved it because I want it?”

“_Want_ it?”

“Do you know of any one who has a better right to _take_ it than I have?
Perhaps I saved it because it _belongs_ to me--do you suppose I want any
one else to kill what I have the best right to kill?”

“Tom,” says Doctor Kirby, really puzzled, to judge from his actions, “I
don’t understand what makes you say you have the right to take my life.”

“Dave, where is my sister buried?” asts Colonel Tom.

“Buried?” says Doctor Kirby. “My God, Tom, is she _dead_?”

“I ask you,” says Colonel Tom.

“And I ask you,” says Doctor Kirby.

And they looked at each other, both wonderized, and trying to
understand. And it busted on me all at oncet who them two men really
was.

I orter knowed it sooner. When the colonel was first called Colonel Tom
Buckner it struck me I knowed the name, and knowed something about it.
But things which was my own consarns was attracting my attention so hard
I couldn’t remember what it was I orter know about that name. Then I
seen him and Doctor Kirby knowed each other when they got that first
square look. That orter of put me on the track, that and a lot of other
things that had happened before. But I didn’t piece things together like
I orter done.

It wasn’t until Colonel Tom Buckner called him “Dave” and ast him about
his sister that I seen who Doctor Kirby must really be.

_He was that there david armstrong!_

And the brother of the girl he had run off with had jest saved his life.
By the way he was talking, he had saved it simply because he thought he
had the first call on what to do with it.

“Where is she?” asts Colonel Tom.

“I ask you,” says Doctor Kirby--or David Armstrong--agin.

Well, I thinks to myself, here is where Daniel puts one acrost the
plate. And I breaks in:

“You both got another guess coming,” I says. “She ain’t buried
anywheres. She ain’t even dead. She’s living in a little town in Indiany
called Athens--or she was about eighteen months ago.”

They both looks at me like they thinks I am crazy.

“What do you know about it?” says Doctor Kirby.

“Are you David Armstrong?” says I.

“Yes,” says he.

“Well,” I says, “you spent four or five days within a stone’s throw of
her a year ago last summer, and she knowed it was you and hid herself
away from you.”

Then I tells them about how I first happened to hear of David Armstrong,
and all I had hearn from Martha. And how I had stayed at the Davises
in Tennessee and got some more of the same story from George, the old
nigger there.

“But, Danny,” says the doctor, “why didn’t you tell me all this?”

I was jest going to say that not knowing he was that there David
Armstrong I didn’t think it any of his business, when Colonel Tom, he
says to Doctor Kirby--I mean to David Armstrong:

“Why should you be concerned as to her whereabouts? You ruined her life
and then deserted her.”

Doctor Kirby--I mean David Armstrong--stands there with the blood going
up his face into his forehead slow and red.

“Tom,” he says, “you and I seem to be working at cross purposes. Maybe
it would help some if you would tell me just how badly you think I
treated Lucy.”

“You ruined her life, and then deserted her,” says Colonel Tom agin,
looking at him hard.

“I _didn’t_ desert her,” said Doctor Kirby. “She got disgusted and left
_me_. Left me without a chance to explain myself. As far as ruining her
life is concerned, I suppose that when I married her--”

“Married her!” cries out the colonel. And David Armstrong stares at him
with his mouth open.

“My God! Tom,” he says, “did you think--?”

And they both come to another standstill. And then they talked some more
and only got more mixed up than ever. Fur the doctor thinks she has left
him, and Colonel Tom thinks he has left her.

“Tom,” says the doctor, “suppose you let me tell my story, and you’ll
see why Lucy left me.”

Him and Colonel Tom had been chums together when they went through
Princeton, it seems--I picked that up from the talk and some of his
story I learned afterward. He had come from Ohio in the beginning, and
his dad had had considerable money. Which he had enjoyed spending of it,
and when he was a young feller never liked to work at nothing else. It
suited him. Colonel Tom, he was considerable like him in that way. So
they was good pals when they was to that school together. They both quit
about the same time. A couple of years after that, when they was
both about twenty-five or six years old, they run acrost each other
accidental in New York one autumn.

The doctor, he was there figgering on going to work at something or
other, but they was so many things to do he was finding it hard to make
a choice. His father was dead by that time, and looking fur a job in
New York, the way he had been doing it, was awful expensive, and he was
running short of money. His father had let him spend so much whilst
he was alive he was very disappointed to find out he couldn’t keep on
forever looking fur work that-a-way.

So Colonel Tom says why not come down home into Tennessee with him fur
a while, and they will both try and figger out what he orter go to work
at. It was the fall of the year, and they was purty good hunting around
there where Colonel Tom lived, and Dave hadn’t never been South any, and
so he goes. He figgers he better take a good, long vacation, anyhow. Fur
if he goes to work that winter or the next spring, and ties up with some
job that keeps him in an office, there may be months and months pass by
before he has another chance at a vacation. That is the worst part of a
job--I found that out myself--you never can tell when you are going to
get shut of it, once you are fool enough to start in.

In Tennessee he had met Miss Lucy. Which her wedding to Prent McMakin
was billed fur to come off about the first of November, jest a month
away.

“I don’t know whether I ever told you or not,” says the doctor, “but I
was engaged to be married myself, Tom, when I went down to your place.
That was what started all the trouble.

“You know engagements are like vaccination--sometimes they take, and
sometimes they don’t. Of course, I had thought at one time I was in love
with this girl I was engaged to. When I found out I wasn’t, I should
have told her so right away. But I didn’t. I thought that she would
get tired of me after a while and turn me loose. I gave her plenty of
chances to turn me loose. I wanted her to break the engagement instead
of me. But she wouldn’t take the hints. She hung on like an Ohio Grand
Army veteran to a country post-office. About half the time I didn’t read
her letters, and about nineteen twentieths of the time I didn’t answer
them. They say hell hath no fury like a woman scorned. But it isn’t
so--it makes them all the fonder of you. I got into the habit of
thinking that while Emma might be engaged to me, I wasn’t engaged to
Emma. Not but what Emma was a nice girl, you know, but--

“Well, I met Lucy. We fell in love with each other. It just happened.
I kept intending to write to the other girl and tell her plainly that
everything was off. But I kept postponing it. It seemed like a deuce of
a hard job to tackle.

“But, finally, I did write her. That was the very day Lucy promised to
throw Prent McMakin over and marry me. You know how determined all your
people were that Lucy should marry McMakin, Tom. They had brought her up
with the idea that she was going to, and, of course, she was bored with
him for that reason.

“We decided the best plan would be to slip away quietly and get married.
We knew it would raise a row. But there was bound to be a row anyhow
when they found she intended to marry me instead of McMakin. So we
figured we might just as well be away from there.

“We left your place early on the morning of October 31, 1888--do you
remember the date, Tom? We took the train for Clarksville, Tennessee,
and got there about two o’clock that afternoon. I suppose you have been
in that interesting centre of the tobacco industry. If you have you may
remember that the courthouse of Montgomery County is right across the
street from the best hotel. I got a license and a preacher without any
trouble, and we were married in the hotel parlour that afternoon. One of
the hotel clerks and the county clerk himself were the witnesses.

“We went to Cincinnati and from there to Chicago. There we got rooms out
on the South Side--Hyde Park, they called it. And I got me a job. I had
some money left, but not enough to buy kohinoors and race-horses with.
Beside, I really wanted to get to work--wanted it for the first time
in my life. You remember young Clayton in our class? He and some other
enterprising citizens had a building and loan association. Such things
are no doubt immoral, but I went to work for him.

“We had been in Chicago a week when Lucy wrote home what she had done,
and begged forgiveness for being so abrupt about it. At least, I suppose
that is what she wrote. It was--”

“I remember exactly what she wrote,” says Colonel Tom.

“I never knew exactly,” says the doctor. “The same mail that brought
word from you that your grandfather had had some sort of a stroke, as a
consequence of our elopement, brought also two letters from Emma. They
had been forwarded from New York to Tennessee, and you had forwarded
them to Chicago.

“Those letters began the trouble. You see, I hadn’t told Emma when I
wrote breaking off the engagement that I was going to get married the
next day. And Emma hadn’t received my letter, or else had made up her
mind to ignore it. Anyhow, those letters were regular love-letters.

“I hadn’t really read one of Emma’s letters for months. But somehow
I couldn’t help reading these. I had forgotten what a gift for the
expression of sentiment Emma had. She fairly revelled in it, Tom. Those
letters were simply writhing with clinging female adjectives. They
_squirmed_ with affection.

“You may remember that Lucy was a rather jealous sort of a person.
Right in the midst of her alarm and grief and self-reproach over her
grandfather, and in the midst of my efforts to comfort her, she spied
the feminine handwriting on those two letters. I had glanced through
them hurriedly, and laid them on the table.

“Tom, I was in bad. The dates on them, you know, were so _recent_. I
didn’t want Lucy to read them. But I didn’t dare to _act_ as if I didn’t
want her to. So I handed them over.

“I suppose--to a bride who had only been married a little more than a
week--and who had hurt her grandfather nearly to death in the marrying,
those letters must have sounded rather odd. I tried to explain. But
all my explanations only seemed to make the case worse for me. Lucy was
furiously jealous. We really had a devil of a row before we were through
with it. I tried to tell her that I loved no one but her. She pointed
out that I must have said much the same sort of thing to Emma. She said
she was almost as sorry for Emma as she was for herself. When Lucy
got through with me, Tom, I looked like thirty cents and felt like
twenty-five of that was plugged.

“I didn’t have sense enough to know that it was most of it grief over
her grandfather, and nerves and hysteria, and the fact that she was
only eighteen years old and lonely, and that being a bride had a certain
amount to do with it. She had told me that I was a beast, and made me
feel like one; and I took the whole thing hard and believed her. I made
a fine, five-act tragedy out of a jealous fit I might have softened into
comedy if I had had the wit.

“I wasn’t so very old myself, and I hadn’t ever been married before. I
should have kept my mouth shut until it was all over, and then when she
began to cry I should have coaxed her up and made her feel like I was
the only solid thing to hang on to in the whole world.

“But the bottom had dropped out of the universe for me. She had said she
hated me. I was fool enough to believe her. I went downtown and began
to drink. I come home late that night. The poor girl had been waiting up
for me--waiting for hours, and becoming more and more frightened when I
didn’t show up. She was over her jealous fit, I suppose. If I had come
home in good shape, or in anything like it, we would have made up then
and there. But my condition stopped all that. I wasn’t so drunk but that
I saw her face change when she let me in. She was disgusted.

“In the morning I was sick and feverish. I was more than disgusted with
myself. I was in despair. If she had hated me before--and she had said
she did--what must she do now? It seemed to me that I had sunk so far
beneath her that it would take years to get back. It didn’t seem worth
while making any plea for myself. You see, I was young and had serious
streaks all through me. So when she told me that she had written home
again, and was going back--was going to leave me, I didn’t see that
it was only a bluff. I didn’t see that she was really only waiting to
forgive me, if I gave her a chance. I started downtown to the building
and loan office, wondering when she would leave, and if there was
anything I could do to make her change her mind. I must repeat again
that I was a fool--that I needed only to speak one word, had I but known
it.

“If I had gone straight to work, everything might have come around all
right even then. But I didn’t. I had that what’s-the-use feeling. And I
stopped in at the Palmer House bar to get something to sort of pull me
together.

“While I was there, who should come up to the bar and order a drink but
Prent McMakin.”

“Yes!” says Colonel Tom, as near excited as he ever got.

“Yes,” says Armstrong, “nobody else. We saw each other in the mirror
behind the bar. I don’t know whether you ever noticed it or not, Tom,
but McMakin’s eyes had a way of looking almost like cross-eyes when he
was startled or excited. They were a good deal too near together at any
time. He gave me such a look when our eyes met in the mirror that, for
an instant, I thought that he intended to do me some mischief--shoot me,
you know, for taking his bride-to-be away from him, or some fool thing
like that. But as we turned toward each other I saw he had no intention
of that sort.”

“Hadn’t he?” says Colonel Tom, mighty interested.

“No,” says the doctor, looking at Colonel Tom very puzzled, “did you
think he had?”

“Yes, I did,” says the colonel, right thoughtful.

“On the contrary,” says Armstrong, “we had a drink together. And he
congratulated me. Made me quite a little speech, in fact; one of the
flowery kind, you know, Tom, and said that he bore me no rancour, and
all that.”

“The deuce he did!” says Colonel Tom, very low, like he was talking to
himself. “And then what?”

“Then,” says the doctor, “then--let me see--it’s all a long time ago,
you know, and McMakin’s part in the whole thing isn’t really important.”

“I’m not so sure it isn’t important,” says the colonel, “but go on.”

“Then,” says Armstrong, “we had another drink together. In fact, a
lot of them. We got awfully friendly. And like a fool I told him of my
quarrel with Lucy.”

“_Like_ a fool,” says Colonel Tom, nodding his head. “Go on.”

“There isn’t much more to tell,” says the doctor, “except that I made
a worse idiot of myself yet, and left McMakin about two o’clock in the
afternoon, as near as I can recollect. Somewhere about ten o’clock that
night I went home. Lucy was gone. I haven’t seen her since.”

“Dave,” says Colonel Tom, “did McMakin happen to mention to you, that
day, just why he was in Chicago?”

“I suppose so,” says the doctor. “I don’t know. Maybe not. That was
twenty years ago. Why?”

“Because,” says Colonel Tom, very grim and quiet, “because your first
thought as to his intention when he met you in the bar was _my_ idea
also. I thought he went to Chicago to settle with you. You see, I got to
Chicago that same afternoon.”

“The same day?”

“Yes. We were to have come together. But I missed the train, and he got
there a day ahead of me. He was waiting at the hotel for me to join him,
and then we were going to look you up together. He found you first and I
never did find you.”

“But I don’t exactly understand,” says the doctor. “You say he had the
idea of shooting me.”

“I don’t understand everything myself,” says Colonel Tom. “But I do
understand that Prent McMakin must have played some sort of a two-faced
game. He never said a word to me about having seen you.

“Listen,” he goes on. “When you and Lucy ran away it nearly killed our
grandfather. In fact, it finally did kill him. When we got Lucy’s letter
that told you were in Chicago I went up to bring her back home. We
didn’t know what we were going to do, McMakin and I, but we were both
agreed that you needed killing. And he swore that he would marry Lucy
anyhow, even--”

“_Marry her!_” sings out the doctor, “but we _were_ married.”

“Dave,” Colonel Tom says very slow and steady, “you keep _saying_ you were
married. But it’s strange--it’s right _strange_ about that marriage.”

And he looked at the doctor hard and close, like he would drag the truth
out of him, and the doctor met his look free and open. You would of
thought Colonel Tom was saying with his look: “You _must_ tell me the
truth.” And the doctor with his was answering: “I _have_ told you the
truth.”

“But, Tom,” says the doctor, “that letter she wrote you from Chicago
must--”

“Do you know what Lucy wrote?” interrupts Colonel Tom. “I remember
exactly. It was simply: ‘_Forgive me. I loved him so. I am happy. I know
it is wrong, but I love him so you must forgive me_.’”

“But couldn’t you tell from _that_ we were married?” cries out the doctor.

“She didn’t mention it,” says Colonel Tom.

“She supposed that her own family had enough faith in her to take it for
granted,” says the doctor, very scornful, his face getting red.

“But wait, Dave,” says Colonel Tom, quiet and cool. “Don’t bluster with
me. There are still a lot of things to be explained. And that marriage
is one of them.

“To go back a bit. You say you got to the house somewhere around ten
o’clock that evening and found Lucy gone. Do you remember the day of the
month?”

“It was November 14, 1888.”

“Exactly,” says Colonel Tom. “I got to Chicago at six o’clock of that
very day. And I went at once to the address in Lucy’s letter. I got
there between seven and eight o’clock. She was gone. My thought was that
you must have got wind of my coming and persuaded her to leave with you
in order to avoid me--although I didn’t see how you could know when I
would get there, either, when I thought it over.”

“And you have never seen her since,” says Armstrong, pondering.

“I _have_ seen her since,” says Colonel Tom, “and that is one thing that
makes me say your story needs further explanation.”

“But where--when--did you see her?” asts the doctor, mighty excited.

“I am coming to that. I went back home again. And in July of the next
year I heard from her.”

“Heard from her?”

“By letter. She was in Galesburg, Illinois, if you know where that is.
She was living there alone. And she was almost destitute. I wrote her to
come home. She would not. But she had to live. I got rid of some of our
property in Tennessee, and took enough cash up there with me to fix her,
in a decent sort of way, for the rest of her life, and put it in the
bank. I was with her there for ten days; then I went back home to get
Aunt Lucy Davis to help me in another effort to persuade her to return.
But when I got back North with Aunt Lucy she had gone.”

“Gone?”

“Yes, and when we returned without her to Tennessee there was a letter
telling us not to try to find her. We thought--I thought--that she might
have taken up with you once again.”

“But, my God! Tom,” the doctor busts out, “you were with her ten days
there in Galesburg! Didn’t she tell you then--couldn’t you tell from the
way she acted--that she had married me?”

“That’s the odd thing, Dave,” says the colonel, very slow and
thoughtful. “That’s what is so very strange about it all. I merely
assumed by my attitude that you were not married, and she let me assume
it without a protest.”

“But did you ask her?”

“Ask her? No. Can’t you see that there was no reason why I should ask
her? I was sure. And being sure of it, naturally I didn’t talk about it
to her. You can understand that I wouldn’t, can’t you? In fact, I never
mentioned you to her. She never mentioned you to me.”

“You must have mistaken her, Tom.”

“I don’t think it’s possible, Dave,” said the colonel. “You can mistake
words and explanations a good deal easier than you can mistake an
atmosphere. No, Dave, I tell you that there’s something odd about
it--married or not, Lucy didn’t _believe_ herself married the last time I
saw her.”

“But she _must_ have known,” says the doctor, as much to himself as to the
colonel. “She _must_ have known.” Any one could of told by the way he said
it that he wasn’t lying. I could see that Colonel Tom believed in him,
too. They was both sicking their intellects onto the job of figgering
out how it was Lucy didn’t know. Finally the doctor says very
thoughtful:

“Whatever became of Prentiss McMakin, Tom?”

“Dead,” says Colonel Tom, “quite a while ago.”

“H-m,” says the doctor, still thinking hard. And then looks at Colonel
Tom like they was an idea in his head. Which he don’t speak her out. But
Colonel Tom seems to understand.

“Yes,” he says, nodding his head. “I think you are on the right track
now. Yes--I shouldn’t wonder.”

Well, they puts this and that together, and they agrees that whatever
happened to make things hard to explain must of happened on that day
that Prentiss McMakin met the doctor in the bar-room, and didn’t shoot
him, as he had made his brags he would. Must of happened between the
time that afternoon when Prentiss McMakin left the doctor and the time
Colonel Tom went out to see his sister and found she had went. Must of
happened somehow through Prent McMakin.

We goes home with Colonel Tom that night. And the next day all three of
us is on our way to Athens, Indiany, where I had seen Miss Lucy at.



CHAPTER XXIII


Fur my part, as the train kept getting further and further north, my
feelings kept getting more and more mixed. It come to me that I might be
steering straight fur a bunch of trouble. The feeling that sadness and
melancholy and seriousness was laying ahead of me kept me from really
enjoying them dollar-apiece meals on the train. It was Martha that done
it. All this past and gone love story I had been hearing about reminded
me of Martha. And I was steering straight toward her, and no way out of
it. How did I know but what that there girl might be expecting fur to
marry me, or something like that? Not but what I was awful in love with
her whilst we was together. But it hadn’t really set in on me very
deep. I hadn’t forgot about her right away. But purty soon I had got to
forgetting her oftener than I remembered her. And now it wasn’t no use
talking--I jest wasn’t in love with Martha no more, and didn’t have
no ambition to be. I had went around the country a good bit, and got
intrusted in other things, and saw several other girls I liked purty
well. Keeping steady in love with jest one girl is mighty hard if you
are moving around a good bit.

But I was considerable worried about Martha. She was an awful romanceful
kind of girl. And even the most sensible kind is said to be fools about
getting their hearts broke and pining away and dying over a feller. I
would hate to think Martha had pined herself sick.

I couldn’t shut my eyes to the fact we was engaged to each other legal,
all right. And if she wanted to act mean about it and take it to a court
it would likely be binding on me. Then I says to myself is she is mean
enough to do that I’ll be derned if I don’t go to jail before I marry
her, and stay there.

And then my conscience got to working inside of me agin. And a picture
of her getting thin and not eating her vittles regular and waiting and
waiting fur me to show up, and me never doing it, come to me. And I felt
sorry fur poor Martha, and thought mebby I would marry her jest to keep
her from dying. Fur you would feel purty tough if a girl was to get so
stuck on you it killed her. Not that I ever seen that really happen,
either; but first and last there has been considerable talk about it.

It wasn’t but what I liked Martha well enough. It was the idea of
getting married, and staying married, made me feel so anxious. Being
married may work out all right fur some folks. But I knowed it never
would work any with me. Or not fur long. Because why should I want to be
tied down to one place, or have a steady job? That would be a mean way
to live.

Of course, with a person that was the doctor’s age it would be
different. He had done his running around and would be willing to settle
down now, I guessed. That is, if he could get his differences with this
here Buckner family patched up satisfactory. I wondered whether he would
be able to or not. Him and Colonel Tom were talking constant on the
train all the way up. From the little stretches of their talk I couldn’t
help hearing, I guessed each one was telling the other all that had
happened to him in the time that had passed by. Colonel Tom what kind
of a life he had lived, and how he had married and his wife had died and
left him a widower without any kids. And the doctor--it was always
hard fur me to get to calling him anything but Doctor Kirby--how he had
happened to start out with a good chancet in life and turn into jest a
travelling fakir.

Well, I thinks to myself now that he has got to be that, mebby her and
him won’t suit so well now, even if they does get their differences
patched up. Fur all the forgiving in the world ain’t going to change
things, or make them no different. But, so long as the doctor appeared
to want to find her so derned bad, I was awful glad I had been the means
of getting him and Miss Lucy together. He had done a lot fur me, first
and last, the doctor had, and I felt like it helped pay him a little.
Though if they was to settle down like married folks I would feel like a
good old sport was spoiled in the doctor, too.

We had to change cars at Indianapolis to get to that there little town.
We was due to reach it about two o’clock in the afternoon. And the
nearer we got to the place the nervouser and nervouser all three of us
become. And not owning we was. The last hour before we hit the place, I
took a drink of water every three minutes, I was so nervous. And when
we come into the town I was already standing out onto the platform. I
wouldn’t of been surprised to find Martha and Miss Lucy down there to
the station. But, of course, they wasn’t. Fur some reason I felt glad
they wasn’t.

“Now,” I says to them two, as we got off the train, “foller me and I
will show you the house.”

Everybody rubbers at strangers in a country town, and wonders why they
have come, and what they is selling, and if they are mebby going to
start a new grain elevator, or buy land, or what. The usual ones around
the depot rubbered at us, and I hearn one geezer say to another:

“See that big feller there? He was through here a year or two ago
selling patent medicine.”

[Illustration: 0353]

“You don’t say so!” says the other one, like it was something important,
like a president or a circus had come, and his eyes a-bugging out. And
the doctor hearn them, too. Fur some reason or other he flushed up and
cut a look out of the corner of his eye at Colonel Tom.

We went right through the main street and out toward the edge of town,
by the crick, where Miss Lucy’s house was. And, if anything, all of us
feeling nervouser yet. And saying nothing and not looking at each other.
And Colonel Tom rolling cigarettes and fumbling fur matches and lighting
them and slinging them away. Fur how does anybody know how women is
going to take even the most ordinary little things?

I knowed the way well enough, and where the house was, but as we went
around the turn in the road I run acrost a surprised feeling. I come
onto the place where our campfire had been them nights we was there.
Looey had drug an old fence post onto the fire one night, and the post
had only burned half up. The butt end of it, all charred and flaked,
was still laying in the grass and weeds there. It hit me with a queer
feeling--like it was only yesterday that fire had been lit there. And
yet I knowed it had been a year and a half ago.

Well, it has always been my luck to run into things without the right
kind of a lie fixed up ahead of time. They was three or four purty good
stories I had been trying over in my head to tell Martha when I seen
her. Any one of them stories might of done all right; but I hadn’t
decided _which_ one to use. And, of course, I run plumb into Martha. She
was standing by the gate, which was about twenty yards from the veranda.
And all four lies popped into my head at oncet, and got so mixed up
with one another there, I seen right off it was useless to try to tell
anything that sounded straight. Besides, when you are in the fix I was
in, what can you tell a girl anyhow?

So I jest says to her:

“Hullo!”

Martha, she had been fussing around some flower bushes with a pair of
shears and gloves on. She looks up when I says that, and she sizes us
all up standing by the gate, and her eyes pops open, and so does her
mouth, and she is so surprised to see me she drops her shears.

And she looks scared, too.

“Is Miss Buckner at home?” asts Colonel Tom, lifting his hat very
polite.

“Miss B-B-Buckner?” Martha stutters, very scared-like, and not taking
her eyes off of me to answer him.

“Miss Hampton, Martha,” I says.

“Y-y-y-es, s-sh-she is,” says Martha. I wondered what was the matter
with her.

It is always my luck to get left all alone with my troubles. The doctor
and the colonel, they walked right past us when she said yes, and up
toward the house, and left her and me standing there. I could of went
along and butted in, mebby. But I says to myself I will have the derned
thing out here and now, and know the worst. And I was so interested in
my trouble and Martha that I didn’t even notice if Miss Lucy met ‘em at
the door, and if so, how she acted. When I next looked up they was all
in the house.

“Martha--” I begins. But she breaks in.

“Danny,” she says, looking like she is going to cry, “don’t l-l-look at
me l-l-like that. If you knew _all_ you wouldn’t blame me. You--”

“Wouldn’t blame you fur what?” I asts her.

“I know it’s wrong of me,” she says, begging-like.

“Mebby it is and mebby it ain’t,” I says. “But what is it?”

“But you never wrote to me,” she says.

“You never wrote to me,” I says, not wanting her to get the best of me,
whatever it was she might be talking about.

“And then _he_ came to town!--”

“Who?” I asts her.

“Don’t you know?” she says. “The man I am going to marry.”

When she said that I felt, all of a sudden, like when you are broke and
hungry and run acrost a half dollar you had forgot about in your other
pants. I was so glad I jumped.

“Great guns!” I says.

I had never really knowed what being glad was before.

“Oh, Danny, Danny,” she says, putting her hands in front of her face,
“and here you have come to claim me for your bride!”

Which showed me why she had looked so scared. That there girl had went
and got engaged to another feller. And had been laying awake nights
suffering fur fear I would turn up agin. And now I had. Looey, he always
said never to trust a woman!

“Martha,” I says, “you ain’t acted right with me.”

“Oh, Danny, Danny,” she says, “I know it! I know it!”

“Some fellers in my place,” I says, “would raise a dickens of a row.”

“I _did_ love you once,” she says, looking at me from between her fingers.

“Yes,” says I, acting real melancholy, “you did. And now you’ve quit it,
they don’t seem to me to be nothing left to live fur.” Martha, she was
an awful romanceful girl. I got the notion that mebby she was enjoying
her own remorsefulness a little bit. I fetched a deep sigh and I says:

“Some fellers would kill theirselves on the spot!”

“Oh!--Oh!--Oh!--” says Martha.

“But, Martha,” says I, “I ain’t that mean. I ain’t going to do that.”

That dern girl ackshellay give me a disappointed look! If anything, she
was jest a bit _too_ romanceful, Martha was.

“No,” says I, cheering up a little, “I am going to do something they
ain’t many fellers would do, Martha. I’m going to forgive you. Free and
fair and open. And give you back my half of that ring, and--”

Dern it! I had forgot I had lost that half of that there ring! I
remembered so quick it stopped me.

“You always kept it, Danny?” she asts me, very soft-spoken, so as not to
give pain to one so faithful and so noble as what I was. “Let me see it,
Danny.”

I made like I was feeling through all my pockets fur it. But that
couldn’t last forever. I run out of pockets purty soon. And her face
begun to show she was smelling a rat. Finally I says:

“These ain’t my other clothes--it must be in them.”

“Danny,” she says, “I believe you _lost_ it.”

“Martha,” I says, taking a chancet, “you know you lost _your_ half!”

She owns up she has lost it a long while ago. And when she lost it, she
says, she knowed that was fate and that our love was omened in under an
evil star. And who was she, she says, to struggle agin fate?

“Martha,” I says, “I’ll be honest with you. Fate got away with my
half too one day when I didn’t know they was crooks like her sticking
around.”

Well, I seen that girl seen through me then. Martha was awful smart
sometimes. And each one was so derned tickled the other one wasn’t going
to do any pining away we like to of fell into love all over agin. But
not quite. Fur neither one would ever trust the other one agin. So we
felt more comfortable with each other. You ain’t never comfortable with
a person you know is more honest than you be.

“But,” says Martha, after a minute, “if you didn’t come back to make me
marry you, what does Doctor Kirby want to see Miss Hampton about? And
who was that with him?”

I had been nigh to forgetting the main thing we had all come here fur,
in my gladness at getting rid of any danger of marrying Martha. But it
come to me all to oncet I had been missing a lot that must be taking
place inside that house. I had even missed the way they first looked
when she met ‘em at the door, and I wouldn’t of missed that fur a lot.
And I seen all to oncet what a big piece of news it will be to Martha.

“Martha,” I says, “they ain’t no Dr. Hartley L. Kirby. The man known as
such is David Armstrong!”

I never seen any one so peetrified as Martha was fur a minute.

“Yes,” says I, “and the other one is Miss Lucy’s brother. And they
are all three in there straightening themselves out and finding where
everybody gets off at, and why. One of these here serious times you read
about. And you and me are missing it all, like a couple of gumps. How
can we hear?”

Martha says she don’t know.

“You _think_,” I told her. “We’ve wasted five good minutes already. I’ve
_got_ to hear the rest of it. Where would they be?”

Martha guesses they will all be in the sitting room, which has got the
best chairs in it.

“What is next to it? A back parlour, or a bedroom, or what?” I was
thinking of how I happened to overhear Perfessor Booth and his fambly
that-a-way.

Martha says they is nothing like that to be tried.

“Martha,” I says, “this is serious. This here story they are thrashing
out in there is the only derned sure-enough romanceful story either
you or me is ever lible to run up against personal in all our lives. It
would of been a good deal nicer if they had ast us in to see the wind-up
of it. Fur, if it hadn’t of been fur me, they never would of been
reunited and rejuvenated the way they be. But some people get stingy
streaks with their concerns. You think!”

Martha, she says: “Danny, it wouldn’t be honourable to listen.”

“Martha,” I tells her, “after the way you and me went and jilted each
other, what kind of senses of honour have _we_ got to brag about?”

She remembers that the spare bedroom is right over the sitting room.
The house is heated with stoves in the winter time. There is a register
right through the floor of the spare bedroom and the ceiling of
the sitting room. Not the kind of a register that comes from a
twisted-around shaft in a house that uses furnace heat. But jest really
a hole in the floor, with a cast-iron grating, to let the heat from
the room below into the one above. She says she guesses two people that
wasn’t so very honourable might sneak into the house the back way, and
up the back stairs, and into the spare bedroom, and lay down on their
stummicks on the floor, being careful to make no noise, and both see and
hear through that register. Which we done it.



CHAPTER XXIV


I could hear well enough, but at first I couldn’t see any of them. But
I gathered that Miss Lucy was standing up whilst she was talking, and
moving around a bit now and then. I seen one of her sleeves, and then a
wisp of her hair. Which was aggervating, fur I wanted to know what she
was like. But her voice was so soft and quiet that you kind of knowed
before you seen her how she orter look.

“Prentiss McMakin came to me that day,” she was saying, “with an
appeal--I hardly know how to tell you.” She broke off.

“Go ahead, Lucy,” says Colonel Tom’s voice.

“He was insulting,” she said. “He had been drinking. He wanted me
to--to--he appealed to me to run off with him.

“I was furious--_naturally_.” Her voice changed as she said it enough so
you could feel how furious Miss Lucy could get. She was like her brother
Tom in some ways.

“I ordered him out of the house. His answer to that was an offer to
marry me. You can imagine that I was surprised as well as angry--I was
perplexed.

“‘But I _am_ married!’ I cried. The idea that any of my own people, or any
one whom I had known at home, would think I wasn’t married was too much
for me to take in all at once.

“‘You _think_ you are,’ said Prentiss McMakin, with a smile.

“In spite of myself my breath stopped. It was as if a chilly hand had
taken hold of my heart. I mean, physically, I felt like that.

“‘I _am_ married,’ I repeated, simply.

“I suppose that McMakin had got the story of our wedding from _you_.” She
stopped a minute. The doctor’s voice answered:

“I suppose so,” like he was a very tired man.

“Anyhow,” she went on, “he knew that we went first to Clarksville. He
said:

“‘You think you are married, Lucy, but you are not.’

“I wish you to understand that Prentiss McMakin did it all very, very
well. That is my excuse. He acted well. There was something about
him--I scarcely know how to put it. It sounds odd, but the truth is that
Prentiss McMakin was always a more convincing sort of a person when he
had been drinking a little than when he was sober. He lacked warmth--he
lacked temperament. I suppose just the right amount put it into him. It
put the devil into him, too, I reckon.

“He told me that you and he, Tom, had been to Clarksville, and had made
investigations, and that the wedding was a fraud. And he told it with a
wealth of convincing detail. In the midst of it he broke off to ask to
see my wedding certificate. As he talked, he laughed at it, and tore
it up, saying that the thing was not worth the paper it was on, and he
threw the pieces of paper into the grate. I listened, and I let him do
it--not that the paper itself mattered particularly. But the very fact
that I let him tear it showed me, myself, that I was believing him.

“He ended with an impassioned appeal to me to go with him.

“I showed him the door. I pretended to the last that I thought he was
lying to me. But I did not think so. I believed him. He had done it
all very cleverly. You can understand how I might--in view of what had
happened?”

I wanted to see Miss Lucy--how she looked when she said different
things, so I could make up my mind whether she was forgiving the doctor
or not. Not that I had much doubt but what they would get their personal
troubles fixed up in the end. The iron grating in the floor was held
down by four good-sized screws, one at each corner. They wasn’t no
filling at all betwixt it and the iron grating that was in the ceiling
of the room below. The space was hollow. I got an idea and took out my
jack-knife.

“What are you going to do?” whispers Martha.

“S-sh-sh,” I says, “shut up, and you’ll see.”

One of the screws was loose, and I picked her out easy enough. The
second one I broke the point off of my knife blade on. Like you nearly
always do on a screw. When it snapped Colonel Tom he says:

“What’s that?” He was powerful quick of hearing, Colonel Tom was. I laid
low till they went on talking agin. Then Martha slides out on tiptoe and
comes back in three seconds with one of these here little screw-drivers
they use around sewing-machines and the little oil can that goes with
it. I oils them screws and has them out in a holy minute, and lifts the
grating from the floor careful and lays it careful on the rug.

By doing all of which I could get my head and shoulders down into that
there hole. And by twisting my neck a good deal, see a little ways to
each side into the room, instead of jest underneath the grating. The
doctor I couldn’t see yet, and only a little of Colonel Tom, but Miss
Lucy quite plain.

“You mean thing,” Martha whispers, “you are blocking it up so I can’t
hear.”

“Keep still,” I whispers, pulling my head out of the hole so the sound
wouldn’t float downward into the room below. “You are jest like all
other women--you got too much curiosity.”

“How about yourself?” says she.

“Who was it thought of taking the grating off?” I whispers back to her.
Which settles her temporary, but she says if I don’t give her a chancet
at it purty soon she will tickle my ribs.

When I listens agin they are burying that there Prent McMakin. But
without any flowers.

Miss Lucy, she was half setting on, half leaning against, the arm of a
chair. Which her head was jest a bit bowed down so that I couldn’t see
her eyes. But they was the beginnings of a smile onto her face. It was
both soft and sad.

“Well,” says Colonel Tom, “you two have wasted almost twenty years of
life.”

“There is one good thing,” says the doctor. “It is a good thing that
there was no child to suffer by our mistakes.”

She raised her face when he said that, Miss Lucy did, and looked in his
direction.

“You call that a good thing?” she says, in a kind of wonder. And after
a minute she sighs. “Perhaps,” she says, “you are right. Heaven only
knows. Perhaps it _was_ better that he died.”

“_Died!_” sings out the doctor.

And I hearn his chair scrape back, like he had riz to his feet sudden.
I nearly busted my neck trying fur to see him, but I couldn’t. I was all
twisted up, head down, and the blood getting into my head from it so I
had to pull it out every little while.

“Yes,” she says, with her eyes wide, “didn’t you know he died?” And then
she turns quick toward Colonel Tom. “Didn’t you tell him--” she begins.
But the doctor cuts in.

“Lucy,” he says, his voice shaking and croaking in his throat, “I never
knew there was a child!”

I hears Colonel Tom hawk in _his_ throat like a man who is either going
to spit or else say something. But he don’t do either one. No one says
anything fur a minute. And then Miss Lucy says agin:

“Yes--he died.”

And then she fell into a kind of a muse. I have been myself in the fix
she looked to be in then--so you forget fur a while where you are, or
who is there, whilst you think about something that has been in the back
part of your mind fur a long, long time.

What she was musing about was that child that hadn’t lived. I could tell
that by her face. I could tell how she must have thought of it, often
and often, fur years and years, and longed fur it, so that it seemed to
her at times she could almost touch it. And how good a mother she would
of been to it. Some women has jest natcherally _got_ to mother something
or other. Miss Lucy was one of that kind. I knowed all in a flash,
whilst I looked at her there, why she had adopted Martha fur her child.

It was a wonderful look that was onto her face. And it was a wonderful
face that look was onto. I felt like I had knowed her forever when I
seen her there. Like the thoughts of her the doctor had been carrying
around with him fur years and years, and that I had caught him thinking
oncet or twicet, had been my thoughts too, all my life.

Miss Lucy, she was one of the kind there’s no use trying to describe.
The feller that could see her that-a-way and not feel made good by it
orter have a whaling. Not the kind of sticky, good feeling that makes
you uncomfortable, like being pestered by your conscience to jine a
church or quit cussing. But the kind of good that makes you forget they
is anything on earth but jest braveness of heart and being willing to
bear things you can’t help. You knowed the world had hurt her a lot when
you seen her standing there; but you didn’t have the nerve to pity her
none, either. Fur you could see she had got over pitying herself. Even
when she was in that muse, longing with all her soul fur that child she
had never knowed, you didn’t have the nerve to pity her none.

“He died,” she says agin, purty soon, with that gentle kind of smile.

Colonel Tom, he clears his throat agin. Like when you are awful dry.

“The truth is--” he begins.

And then he breaks off agin. Miss Lucy turns toward him when he speaks.
By the strange look that come onto her face there must of been something
right curious in _his_ manner too. I was jest simply laying onto my
forehead mashing one of my dern eyeballs through a little hole in the
grating. But I couldn’t, even that way, see fur enough to one side to
see how _he_ looked.

“The truth is,” says Colonel Tom, trying it agin, “that I--well, Lucy,
the child may be dead, but he didn’t die when you thought he did.”

There was a flash of hope flared into her face that I hated to see come
there. Because when it died out in a minute, as I expected it would have
to, it looked to me like it might take all her life out with it. Her
lips parted like she was going to say something with them. But she
didn’t. She jest looked it.

“Why did you never tell me this--that there was a child?” says the
doctor, very eager.

“Wait,” says Colonel Tom, “let me tell the story in my own way.”

Which he done it. It seems when he had went to Galesburg this here child
had only been born a few days. And Miss Lucy was still sick. And the kid
itself was sick, and liable to die any minute, by the looks of things.

Which Colonel Tom wishes that it would die, in his heart. He thinks that
it is an illegitimate child, and he hates the idea of it and he hates
the sight of it. The second night he is there he is setting in his
sister’s room, and the woman that has been nursing the kid and Miss Lucy
too is in the next room with the kid.

She comes to the door and beckons to him, the nurse does. He tiptoes
toward her, and she says to him, very low-voiced, that “it is all over.”
 Meaning the kid has quit struggling fur to live, and jest natcherally
floated away. The nurse had thought Miss Lucy asleep, but as both her
and Colonel Tom turn quick toward her bed they see that she has heard
and seen, and she turns her face toward the wall. Which he tries fur to
comfort her, Colonel Tom does, telling her as how it is an illegitimate
child, and fur its own sake it was better it was dead before it ever
lived any. Which she don’t answer of him back, but only stares in
a wild-eyed way at him, and lays there and looks desperate, and says
nothing.

In his heart Colonel Tom is awful glad that it is dead. He can’t help
feeling that way. And he quits trying to talk to his sister, fur he
suspicions that she will ketch onto the fact that he is glad that it is
dead. He goes on into the next room.

He finds the nurse looking awful funny, and bending over the dead kid.
She is putting a looking-glass to its lips. He asts her why.

She says she thought she might be mistaken after all. She couldn’t
say jest _when_ it died. It was alive and feeble, and then purty soon it
showed no signs of life. It was like it hadn’t had enough strength to
stay and had jest went. I didn’t show any pulse, and it didn’t appear
to be breathing. And she had watched it and done everything before she
beckoned to Colonel Tom and told him that it was dead. But as she come
back into the room where it was she thought she noticed something that
was too light to be called a real flutter move its eyelids, which she
had closed down over its eyes. It was the ghost of a move, like it had
tried to raise the lids, or they had tried to raise theirselves, and had
been too weak. So she has got busy and wrapped a hot cloth around it,
and got a drop of brandy or two between its lips, and was fighting to
bring it back to life. And thought she was doing it. Thought she had
felt a little flutter in its chest, and was trying if it had breath at
all.

Colonel Tom thinks of what big folks the Buckner fambly has always been
at home. And how high they had always held their heads. And how none of
the women has ever been like this before. Nor no disgrace of any kind.
And that there kid, if it is alive, is a sign of disgrace. And he hoped
to God, he said, it wasn’t alive.

But he don’t say so. He stands there and watches that nurse fight fur to
hold onto the little mist of life she thinks now is still into it. She
unbuttons her dress and lays the kid against the heat of her own breast.
And wills fur it to live, and fights fur it to, and determines that it
must, and jest natcherally tries fur to bullyrag death into going away.
And Colonel Tom watching, and wishing that it wouldn’t. But he gets
interested in that there fight, and so purty soon he is hoping both ways
by spells. And the fight all going on without a word spoken.

But finally the nurse begins fur to cry. Not because she is sure it is
dead. But because she is sure it is coming back. Which it does, slow.

“‘But I have told _her_ that it is dead,’” says Colonel Tom, jerking his
head toward the other room where Miss Lucy is lying. He speaks in a low
voice and closes the door when he speaks. Fur it looks now like it was
getting strong enough so it might even squall a little.

“I don’t know what kind of a look there was on my face,” says Colonel
Tom, telling of the story to his sister and the doctor, “but she must
have seen that I was--and heaven help me, but I _was_!--sorry that the
baby was alive. It would have been such an easy way out of it had it
been really dead!

“‘She mustn’t know that it is living,’ I said to the nurse, finally,”
 says Colonel Tom, going on with his story. I had been watching Miss
Lucy’s face as Colonel Tom talked and she was so worked up by that fight
fur the kid’s life she was breathless. But her eyes was cast down, I
guess so her brother couldn’t see them. Colonel Tom goes on with his
story:

“‘You don’t mean--’ said the nurse, startled.

“‘No! No!’ I said, ‘of course--not that! But--why should she ever know
that it didn’t die?’”

“‘It is illegitimate?’ asked the nurse.

“‘Yes,’ I said.” The long and short of it was, Colonel Tom went on to
tell, that the nurse went out and got her mother. Which the two of them
lived alone, only around the corner. And give the child into the keeping
of her mother, who took it away then and there.

Colonel Tom had made up his mind there wasn’t going to be no bastards in
the Buckner fambly. And now that Miss Lucy thought it was dead he would
let her keep on thinking so. And that would be settled for good and all.
He figgered that it wouldn’t ever hurt her none if she never knowed it.

The nurse’s mother kept it all that week, and it throve. Colonel Tom was
coaxing of his sister to go back to Tennessee. But she wouldn’t go. So
he had made up his mind to go back and get his Aunt Lucy Davis to come
and help him coax. He was only waiting fur his sister to get well enough
so he could leave her. She got better, and she never ast fur the kid,
nor said nothing about it. Which was probable because she seen he hated
it so. He had made up his mind, before he went back after their Aunt
Lucy Davis, to take the baby himself and put it into some kind of an
institution.

“I thought,” he says to Miss Lucy, telling of the story, “that you
yourself were almost reconciled to the thought that it hadn’t lived.”

Miss Lucy interrupted him with a little sound. She was breathing hard,
and shaking from head to foot. No one would have thought to look at her
then she was reconciled to the idea that it hadn’t lived. It was cruel
hard on her to tear her to pieces with the news that it really had
lived, but had lived away from her all these years she had been longing
fur it. And no chancet fur her ever to mother it. And no way to tell
what had ever become of it. I felt awful sorry fur Miss Lucy then.

“But when I got ready to leave Galesburg,” Colonel Tom goes on, “it
suddenly occurred to me that there would be difficulties in the way of
putting it in a home of any sort. I didn’t know what to do with it--”

“What _did_ you? What _did_ you? _What did you_?” cries out Miss Lucy,
pressing her hand to her chest, like she was smothering.

“The first thing I did,” says Colonel Tom, “was to get you to another
house--you remember, Lucy?”

“Yes, yes!” she says, excited, “and what then?”

“Perhaps I did a very foolish thing,” says Colonel Tom.

“After I had seen you installed in the new place and had bidden you
good-bye, I got a carriage and drove by the place where the nurse and
her mother lived. I told the woman that I had changed my mind--that you
were going to raise the baby--that I was going to permit it. I don’t
think she quite believed me, but she gave me the baby. What else could
she do? Besides, I had paid her well, when I discharged her, to say
nothing to you, and to keep the baby until I should come for it. They
needed money; they were poor.

“I was determined that it should never be heard of again. It was about
noon when I left Galesburg. I drove all that afternoon, with the baby
in a basket on the seat of the carriage beside me. Everybody has read
in books, since books were first written--and seen in newspapers,
too--about children being left on door steps. Given an infant to dispose
of, that is perhaps the first thing that occurs to a person. There was
a thick plaid shawl wrapped about the child. In the basket, beside the
baby, was a nursing bottle. About dusk I had it refilled with warm milk
at a farmhouse near--”

My head was beginning fur to swim. I pulled my head out of that there
hole, and rammed my foot into it. It banged against that grating and
loosened it. It busted loose some plaster, which showered down into the
room underneath. Miss Lucy, she screamed. And the doctor and Colonel Tom
both yelled out to oncet:

“Who’s that?”

“It’s me,” I yells, banging that grating agin. “Watch out below there!”
 And the third lick I give her she broke loose and clattered down right
onto a centre table and spilled over some photographs and a vase full of
flowers, and bounced off onto the floor.

“Look out below,” I yells, “I’m coming down!”

I let my legs through first, and swung them so I would land to one side
of the table, and held by my hands, and dropped. But struck the table a
sideways swipe and turned it over, and fell onto the floor. The doctor,
he grabbed me by the collar and straightened me up, and give me a shake
and stood me onto my feet.

“What do you mean--” he begins. But I breaks in.

“Now then,” I says to Colonel Tom, “did you leave that there child
sucking that there bottle on the doorstep of a blacksmith’s house next
to his shop at the edge of a little country town about twenty miles
northeast of Galesburg wrapped up in that there plaid shawl?”

“I did,” says Colonel Tom.

“Then,” says I, turning to Miss Lucy, “I can understand why I have been
feeling drawed to _you_ fur quite a spell. I’m him.”



     Transcribers Note:  The following changes made:
      ORIGINAL
     PAGE  LINE  ORIGINAL               CHANGED TO
       17    28  Primose,               Primrose,
       41    12  jests looks            jest looks
       83    14  to,                    too,
       84     4  jests sets             jest sets
       89    28  it                     it.
       99    13  our fur                out fur
      121     4  Chieftan.              Chieftain.
      121    16  i  it                  if it
      160     8  them.                  then.
      183    18  sir fo’                sir, fo’
      189    16  shedon’                she don’
      207    22  purty seen             purty soon
      210     5  They way               The way
      212     6  pintetdly              pintedly
      251     2  Witherses.’            Witherses’.
      251    22  toe hurt               to hurt
      269     3  “Gentleman,            “Gentlemen,
      276    19  ‘Will,”                “Will,”
       282     9  won’t!”                won’t
      288    16  real y                 really
      292    10  t ouble.               trouble.
      308     1  al right               all right
      316     4  I says,” they          I says, “they





*** End of this LibraryBlog Digital Book "Danny's Own Story" ***

Copyright 2023 LibraryBlog. All rights reserved.



Home